github.com/Schaudge/hts@v0.0.0-20240223063651-737b4d69d68c/bgzf/testdata/Mark.Twain-Tom.Sawyer.txt (about)

     1  The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Adventures of Tom Sawyer, Complete
     2  by Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
     3  
     4  This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
     5  almost no restrictions whatsoever.  You may copy it, give it away or
     6  re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
     7  with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
     8  
     9  
    10  Title: The Adventures of Tom Sawyer, Complete
    11  
    12  Author: Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
    13  
    14  Release Date: August 20, 2006 [EBook #74]
    15  [Last updated: May 3, 2011]
    16  
    17  Language: English
    18  
    19  
    20  *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK TOM SAWYER ***
    21  
    22  
    23  
    24  
    25  Produced by David Widger. The previous edition was updated by Jose
    26  Menendez.
    27  
    28  
    29  
    30  
    31  
    32                     THE ADVENTURES OF TOM SAWYER
    33                                  BY
    34                              MARK TWAIN
    35                       (Samuel Langhorne Clemens)
    36  
    37  
    38  
    39  
    40                             P R E F A C E
    41  
    42  MOST of the adventures recorded in this book really occurred; one or
    43  two were experiences of my own, the rest those of boys who were
    44  schoolmates of mine. Huck Finn is drawn from life; Tom Sawyer also, but
    45  not from an individual--he is a combination of the characteristics of
    46  three boys whom I knew, and therefore belongs to the composite order of
    47  architecture.
    48  
    49  The odd superstitions touched upon were all prevalent among children
    50  and slaves in the West at the period of this story--that is to say,
    51  thirty or forty years ago.
    52  
    53  Although my book is intended mainly for the entertainment of boys and
    54  girls, I hope it will not be shunned by men and women on that account,
    55  for part of my plan has been to try to pleasantly remind adults of what
    56  they once were themselves, and of how they felt and thought and talked,
    57  and what queer enterprises they sometimes engaged in.
    58  
    59                                                              THE AUTHOR.
    60  
    61  HARTFORD, 1876.
    62  
    63  
    64  
    65                            T O M   S A W Y E R
    66  
    67  
    68  
    69  CHAPTER I
    70  
    71  "TOM!"
    72  
    73  No answer.
    74  
    75  "TOM!"
    76  
    77  No answer.
    78  
    79  "What's gone with that boy,  I wonder? You TOM!"
    80  
    81  No answer.
    82  
    83  The old lady pulled her spectacles down and looked over them about the
    84  room; then she put them up and looked out under them. She seldom or
    85  never looked THROUGH them for so small a thing as a boy; they were her
    86  state pair, the pride of her heart, and were built for "style," not
    87  service--she could have seen through a pair of stove-lids just as well.
    88  She looked perplexed for a moment, and then said, not fiercely, but
    89  still loud enough for the furniture to hear:
    90  
    91  "Well, I lay if I get hold of you I'll--"
    92  
    93  She did not finish, for by this time she was bending down and punching
    94  under the bed with the broom, and so she needed breath to punctuate the
    95  punches with. She resurrected nothing but the cat.
    96  
    97  "I never did see the beat of that boy!"
    98  
    99  She went to the open door and stood in it and looked out among the
   100  tomato vines and "jimpson" weeds that constituted the garden. No Tom.
   101  So she lifted up her voice at an angle calculated for distance and
   102  shouted:
   103  
   104  "Y-o-u-u TOM!"
   105  
   106  There was a slight noise behind her and she turned just in time to
   107  seize a small boy by the slack of his roundabout and arrest his flight.
   108  
   109  "There! I might 'a' thought of that closet. What you been doing in
   110  there?"
   111  
   112  "Nothing."
   113  
   114  "Nothing! Look at your hands. And look at your mouth. What IS that
   115  truck?"
   116  
   117  "I don't know, aunt."
   118  
   119  "Well, I know. It's jam--that's what it is. Forty times I've said if
   120  you didn't let that jam alone I'd skin you. Hand me that switch."
   121  
   122  The switch hovered in the air--the peril was desperate--
   123  
   124  "My! Look behind you, aunt!"
   125  
   126  The old lady whirled round, and snatched her skirts out of danger. The
   127  lad fled on the instant, scrambled up the high board-fence, and
   128  disappeared over it.
   129  
   130  His aunt Polly stood surprised a moment, and then broke into a gentle
   131  laugh.
   132  
   133  "Hang the boy, can't I never learn anything? Ain't he played me tricks
   134  enough like that for me to be looking out for him by this time? But old
   135  fools is the biggest fools there is. Can't learn an old dog new tricks,
   136  as the saying is. But my goodness, he never plays them alike, two days,
   137  and how is a body to know what's coming? He 'pears to know just how
   138  long he can torment me before I get my dander up, and he knows if he
   139  can make out to put me off for a minute or make me laugh, it's all down
   140  again and I can't hit him a lick. I ain't doing my duty by that boy,
   141  and that's the Lord's truth, goodness knows. Spare the rod and spile
   142  the child, as the Good Book says. I'm a laying up sin and suffering for
   143  us both, I know. He's full of the Old Scratch, but laws-a-me! he's my
   144  own dead sister's boy, poor thing, and I ain't got the heart to lash
   145  him, somehow. Every time I let him off, my conscience does hurt me so,
   146  and every time I hit him my old heart most breaks. Well-a-well, man
   147  that is born of woman is of few days and full of trouble, as the
   148  Scripture says, and I reckon it's so. He'll play hookey this evening, *
   149  and [* Southwestern for "afternoon"] I'll just be obleeged to make him
   150  work, to-morrow, to punish him. It's mighty hard to make him work
   151  Saturdays, when all the boys is having holiday, but he hates work more
   152  than he hates anything else, and I've GOT to do some of my duty by him,
   153  or I'll be the ruination of the child."
   154  
   155  Tom did play hookey, and he had a very good time. He got back home
   156  barely in season to help Jim, the small colored boy, saw next-day's
   157  wood and split the kindlings before supper--at least he was there in
   158  time to tell his adventures to Jim while Jim did three-fourths of the
   159  work. Tom's younger brother (or rather half-brother) Sid was already
   160  through with his part of the work (picking up chips), for he was a
   161  quiet boy, and had no adventurous, troublesome ways.
   162  
   163  While Tom was eating his supper, and stealing sugar as opportunity
   164  offered, Aunt Polly asked him questions that were full of guile, and
   165  very deep--for she wanted to trap him into damaging revealments. Like
   166  many other simple-hearted souls, it was her pet vanity to believe she
   167  was endowed with a talent for dark and mysterious diplomacy, and she
   168  loved to contemplate her most transparent devices as marvels of low
   169  cunning. Said she:
   170  
   171  "Tom, it was middling warm in school, warn't it?"
   172  
   173  "Yes'm."
   174  
   175  "Powerful warm, warn't it?"
   176  
   177  "Yes'm."
   178  
   179  "Didn't you want to go in a-swimming, Tom?"
   180  
   181  A bit of a scare shot through Tom--a touch of uncomfortable suspicion.
   182  He searched Aunt Polly's face, but it told him nothing. So he said:
   183  
   184  "No'm--well, not very much."
   185  
   186  The old lady reached out her hand and felt Tom's shirt, and said:
   187  
   188  "But you ain't too warm now, though." And it flattered her to reflect
   189  that she had discovered that the shirt was dry without anybody knowing
   190  that that was what she had in her mind. But in spite of her, Tom knew
   191  where the wind lay, now. So he forestalled what might be the next move:
   192  
   193  "Some of us pumped on our heads--mine's damp yet. See?"
   194  
   195  Aunt Polly was vexed to think she had overlooked that bit of
   196  circumstantial evidence, and missed a trick. Then she had a new
   197  inspiration:
   198  
   199  "Tom, you didn't have to undo your shirt collar where I sewed it, to
   200  pump on your head, did you? Unbutton your jacket!"
   201  
   202  The trouble vanished out of Tom's face. He opened his jacket. His
   203  shirt collar was securely sewed.
   204  
   205  "Bother! Well, go 'long with you. I'd made sure you'd played hookey
   206  and been a-swimming. But I forgive ye, Tom. I reckon you're a kind of a
   207  singed cat, as the saying is--better'n you look. THIS time."
   208  
   209  She was half sorry her sagacity had miscarried, and half glad that Tom
   210  had stumbled into obedient conduct for once.
   211  
   212  But Sidney said:
   213  
   214  "Well, now, if I didn't think you sewed his collar with white thread,
   215  but it's black."
   216  
   217  "Why, I did sew it with white! Tom!"
   218  
   219  But Tom did not wait for the rest. As he went out at the door he said:
   220  
   221  "Siddy, I'll lick you for that."
   222  
   223  In a safe place Tom examined two large needles which were thrust into
   224  the lapels of his jacket, and had thread bound about them--one needle
   225  carried white thread and the other black. He said:
   226  
   227  "She'd never noticed if it hadn't been for Sid. Confound it! sometimes
   228  she sews it with white, and sometimes she sews it with black. I wish to
   229  geeminy she'd stick to one or t'other--I can't keep the run of 'em. But
   230  I bet you I'll lam Sid for that. I'll learn him!"
   231  
   232  He was not the Model Boy of the village. He knew the model boy very
   233  well though--and loathed him.
   234  
   235  Within two minutes, or even less, he had forgotten all his troubles.
   236  Not because his troubles were one whit less heavy and bitter to him
   237  than a man's are to a man, but because a new and powerful interest bore
   238  them down and drove them out of his mind for the time--just as men's
   239  misfortunes are forgotten in the excitement of new enterprises. This
   240  new interest was a valued novelty in whistling, which he had just
   241  acquired from a negro, and he was suffering to practise it undisturbed.
   242  It consisted in a peculiar bird-like turn, a sort of liquid warble,
   243  produced by touching the tongue to the roof of the mouth at short
   244  intervals in the midst of the music--the reader probably remembers how
   245  to do it, if he has ever been a boy. Diligence and attention soon gave
   246  him the knack of it, and he strode down the street with his mouth full
   247  of harmony and his soul full of gratitude. He felt much as an
   248  astronomer feels who has discovered a new planet--no doubt, as far as
   249  strong, deep, unalloyed pleasure is concerned, the advantage was with
   250  the boy, not the astronomer.
   251  
   252  The summer evenings were long. It was not dark, yet. Presently Tom
   253  checked his whistle. A stranger was before him--a boy a shade larger
   254  than himself. A new-comer of any age or either sex was an impressive
   255  curiosity in the poor little shabby village of St. Petersburg. This boy
   256  was well dressed, too--well dressed on a week-day. This was simply
   257  astounding. His cap was a dainty thing, his close-buttoned blue cloth
   258  roundabout was new and natty, and so were his pantaloons. He had shoes
   259  on--and it was only Friday. He even wore a necktie, a bright bit of
   260  ribbon. He had a citified air about him that ate into Tom's vitals. The
   261  more Tom stared at the splendid marvel, the higher he turned up his
   262  nose at his finery and the shabbier and shabbier his own outfit seemed
   263  to him to grow. Neither boy spoke. If one moved, the other moved--but
   264  only sidewise, in a circle; they kept face to face and eye to eye all
   265  the time. Finally Tom said:
   266  
   267  "I can lick you!"
   268  
   269  "I'd like to see you try it."
   270  
   271  "Well, I can do it."
   272  
   273  "No you can't, either."
   274  
   275  "Yes I can."
   276  
   277  "No you can't."
   278  
   279  "I can."
   280  
   281  "You can't."
   282  
   283  "Can!"
   284  
   285  "Can't!"
   286  
   287  An uncomfortable pause. Then Tom said:
   288  
   289  "What's your name?"
   290  
   291  "'Tisn't any of your business, maybe."
   292  
   293  "Well I 'low I'll MAKE it my business."
   294  
   295  "Well why don't you?"
   296  
   297  "If you say much, I will."
   298  
   299  "Much--much--MUCH. There now."
   300  
   301  "Oh, you think you're mighty smart, DON'T you? I could lick you with
   302  one hand tied behind me, if I wanted to."
   303  
   304  "Well why don't you DO it? You SAY you can do it."
   305  
   306  "Well I WILL, if you fool with me."
   307  
   308  "Oh yes--I've seen whole families in the same fix."
   309  
   310  "Smarty! You think you're SOME, now, DON'T you? Oh, what a hat!"
   311  
   312  "You can lump that hat if you don't like it. I dare you to knock it
   313  off--and anybody that'll take a dare will suck eggs."
   314  
   315  "You're a liar!"
   316  
   317  "You're another."
   318  
   319  "You're a fighting liar and dasn't take it up."
   320  
   321  "Aw--take a walk!"
   322  
   323  "Say--if you give me much more of your sass I'll take and bounce a
   324  rock off'n your head."
   325  
   326  "Oh, of COURSE you will."
   327  
   328  "Well I WILL."
   329  
   330  "Well why don't you DO it then? What do you keep SAYING you will for?
   331  Why don't you DO it? It's because you're afraid."
   332  
   333  "I AIN'T afraid."
   334  
   335  "You are."
   336  
   337  "I ain't."
   338  
   339  "You are."
   340  
   341  Another pause, and more eying and sidling around each other. Presently
   342  they were shoulder to shoulder. Tom said:
   343  
   344  "Get away from here!"
   345  
   346  "Go away yourself!"
   347  
   348  "I won't."
   349  
   350  "I won't either."
   351  
   352  So they stood, each with a foot placed at an angle as a brace, and
   353  both shoving with might and main, and glowering at each other with
   354  hate. But neither could get an advantage. After struggling till both
   355  were hot and flushed, each relaxed his strain with watchful caution,
   356  and Tom said:
   357  
   358  "You're a coward and a pup. I'll tell my big brother on you, and he
   359  can thrash you with his little finger, and I'll make him do it, too."
   360  
   361  "What do I care for your big brother? I've got a brother that's bigger
   362  than he is--and what's more, he can throw him over that fence, too."
   363  [Both brothers were imaginary.]
   364  
   365  "That's a lie."
   366  
   367  "YOUR saying so don't make it so."
   368  
   369  Tom drew a line in the dust with his big toe, and said:
   370  
   371  "I dare you to step over that, and I'll lick you till you can't stand
   372  up. Anybody that'll take a dare will steal sheep."
   373  
   374  The new boy stepped over promptly, and said:
   375  
   376  "Now you said you'd do it, now let's see you do it."
   377  
   378  "Don't you crowd me now; you better look out."
   379  
   380  "Well, you SAID you'd do it--why don't you do it?"
   381  
   382  "By jingo! for two cents I WILL do it."
   383  
   384  The new boy took two broad coppers out of his pocket and held them out
   385  with derision. Tom struck them to the ground. In an instant both boys
   386  were rolling and tumbling in the dirt, gripped together like cats; and
   387  for the space of a minute they tugged and tore at each other's hair and
   388  clothes, punched and scratched each other's nose, and covered
   389  themselves with dust and glory. Presently the confusion took form, and
   390  through the fog of battle Tom appeared, seated astride the new boy, and
   391  pounding him with his fists. "Holler 'nuff!" said he.
   392  
   393  The boy only struggled to free himself. He was crying--mainly from rage.
   394  
   395  "Holler 'nuff!"--and the pounding went on.
   396  
   397  At last the stranger got out a smothered "'Nuff!" and Tom let him up
   398  and said:
   399  
   400  "Now that'll learn you. Better look out who you're fooling with next
   401  time."
   402  
   403  The new boy went off brushing the dust from his clothes, sobbing,
   404  snuffling, and occasionally looking back and shaking his head and
   405  threatening what he would do to Tom the "next time he caught him out."
   406  To which Tom responded with jeers, and started off in high feather, and
   407  as soon as his back was turned the new boy snatched up a stone, threw
   408  it and hit him between the shoulders and then turned tail and ran like
   409  an antelope. Tom chased the traitor home, and thus found out where he
   410  lived. He then held a position at the gate for some time, daring the
   411  enemy to come outside, but the enemy only made faces at him through the
   412  window and declined. At last the enemy's mother appeared, and called
   413  Tom a bad, vicious, vulgar child, and ordered him away. So he went
   414  away; but he said he "'lowed" to "lay" for that boy.
   415  
   416  He got home pretty late that night, and when he climbed cautiously in
   417  at the window, he uncovered an ambuscade, in the person of his aunt;
   418  and when she saw the state his clothes were in her resolution to turn
   419  his Saturday holiday into captivity at hard labor became adamantine in
   420  its firmness.
   421  
   422  
   423  
   424  CHAPTER II
   425  
   426  SATURDAY morning was come, and all the summer world was bright and
   427  fresh, and brimming with life. There was a song in every heart; and if
   428  the heart was young the music issued at the lips. There was cheer in
   429  every face and a spring in every step. The locust-trees were in bloom
   430  and the fragrance of the blossoms filled the air. Cardiff Hill, beyond
   431  the village and above it, was green with vegetation and it lay just far
   432  enough away to seem a Delectable Land, dreamy, reposeful, and inviting.
   433  
   434  Tom appeared on the sidewalk with a bucket of whitewash and a
   435  long-handled brush. He surveyed the fence, and all gladness left him and
   436  a deep melancholy settled down upon his spirit. Thirty yards of board
   437  fence nine feet high. Life to him seemed hollow, and existence but a
   438  burden. Sighing, he dipped his brush and passed it along the topmost
   439  plank; repeated the operation; did it again; compared the insignificant
   440  whitewashed streak with the far-reaching continent of unwhitewashed
   441  fence, and sat down on a tree-box discouraged. Jim came skipping out at
   442  the gate with a tin pail, and singing Buffalo Gals. Bringing water from
   443  the town pump had always been hateful work in Tom's eyes, before, but
   444  now it did not strike him so. He remembered that there was company at
   445  the pump. White, mulatto, and negro boys and girls were always there
   446  waiting their turns, resting, trading playthings, quarrelling,
   447  fighting, skylarking. And he remembered that although the pump was only
   448  a hundred and fifty yards off, Jim never got back with a bucket of
   449  water under an hour--and even then somebody generally had to go after
   450  him. Tom said:
   451  
   452  "Say, Jim, I'll fetch the water if you'll whitewash some."
   453  
   454  Jim shook his head and said:
   455  
   456  "Can't, Mars Tom. Ole missis, she tole me I got to go an' git dis
   457  water an' not stop foolin' roun' wid anybody. She say she spec' Mars
   458  Tom gwine to ax me to whitewash, an' so she tole me go 'long an' 'tend
   459  to my own business--she 'lowed SHE'D 'tend to de whitewashin'."
   460  
   461  "Oh, never you mind what she said, Jim. That's the way she always
   462  talks. Gimme the bucket--I won't be gone only a a minute. SHE won't
   463  ever know."
   464  
   465  "Oh, I dasn't, Mars Tom. Ole missis she'd take an' tar de head off'n
   466  me. 'Deed she would."
   467  
   468  "SHE! She never licks anybody--whacks 'em over the head with her
   469  thimble--and who cares for that, I'd like to know. She talks awful, but
   470  talk don't hurt--anyways it don't if she don't cry. Jim, I'll give you
   471  a marvel. I'll give you a white alley!"
   472  
   473  Jim began to waver.
   474  
   475  "White alley, Jim! And it's a bully taw."
   476  
   477  "My! Dat's a mighty gay marvel, I tell you! But Mars Tom I's powerful
   478  'fraid ole missis--"
   479  
   480  "And besides, if you will I'll show you my sore toe."
   481  
   482  Jim was only human--this attraction was too much for him. He put down
   483  his pail, took the white alley, and bent over the toe with absorbing
   484  interest while the bandage was being unwound. In another moment he was
   485  flying down the street with his pail and a tingling rear, Tom was
   486  whitewashing with vigor, and Aunt Polly was retiring from the field
   487  with a slipper in her hand and triumph in her eye.
   488  
   489  But Tom's energy did not last. He began to think of the fun he had
   490  planned for this day, and his sorrows multiplied. Soon the free boys
   491  would come tripping along on all sorts of delicious expeditions, and
   492  they would make a world of fun of him for having to work--the very
   493  thought of it burnt him like fire. He got out his worldly wealth and
   494  examined it--bits of toys, marbles, and trash; enough to buy an
   495  exchange of WORK, maybe, but not half enough to buy so much as half an
   496  hour of pure freedom. So he returned his straitened means to his
   497  pocket, and gave up the idea of trying to buy the boys. At this dark
   498  and hopeless moment an inspiration burst upon him! Nothing less than a
   499  great, magnificent inspiration.
   500  
   501  He took up his brush and went tranquilly to work. Ben Rogers hove in
   502  sight presently--the very boy, of all boys, whose ridicule he had been
   503  dreading. Ben's gait was the hop-skip-and-jump--proof enough that his
   504  heart was light and his anticipations high. He was eating an apple, and
   505  giving a long, melodious whoop, at intervals, followed by a deep-toned
   506  ding-dong-dong, ding-dong-dong, for he was personating a steamboat. As
   507  he drew near, he slackened speed, took the middle of the street, leaned
   508  far over to starboard and rounded to ponderously and with laborious
   509  pomp and circumstance--for he was personating the Big Missouri, and
   510  considered himself to be drawing nine feet of water. He was boat and
   511  captain and engine-bells combined, so he had to imagine himself
   512  standing on his own hurricane-deck giving the orders and executing them:
   513  
   514  "Stop her, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling!" The headway ran almost out, and he
   515  drew up slowly toward the sidewalk.
   516  
   517  "Ship up to back! Ting-a-ling-ling!" His arms straightened and
   518  stiffened down his sides.
   519  
   520  "Set her back on the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow! ch-chow-wow!
   521  Chow!" His right hand, meantime, describing stately circles--for it was
   522  representing a forty-foot wheel.
   523  
   524  "Let her go back on the labboard! Ting-a-lingling! Chow-ch-chow-chow!"
   525  The left hand began to describe circles.
   526  
   527  "Stop the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Stop the labboard! Come ahead
   528  on the stabboard! Stop her! Let your outside turn over slow!
   529  Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow-ow-ow! Get out that head-line! LIVELY now!
   530  Come--out with your spring-line--what're you about there! Take a turn
   531  round that stump with the bight of it! Stand by that stage, now--let her
   532  go! Done with the engines, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling! SH'T! S'H'T! SH'T!"
   533  (trying the gauge-cocks).
   534  
   535  Tom went on whitewashing--paid no attention to the steamboat. Ben
   536  stared a moment and then said: "Hi-YI! YOU'RE up a stump, ain't you!"
   537  
   538  No answer. Tom surveyed his last touch with the eye of an artist, then
   539  he gave his brush another gentle sweep and surveyed the result, as
   540  before. Ben ranged up alongside of him. Tom's mouth watered for the
   541  apple, but he stuck to his work. Ben said:
   542  
   543  "Hello, old chap, you got to work, hey?"
   544  
   545  Tom wheeled suddenly and said:
   546  
   547  "Why, it's you, Ben! I warn't noticing."
   548  
   549  "Say--I'm going in a-swimming, I am. Don't you wish you could? But of
   550  course you'd druther WORK--wouldn't you? Course you would!"
   551  
   552  Tom contemplated the boy a bit, and said:
   553  
   554  "What do you call work?"
   555  
   556  "Why, ain't THAT work?"
   557  
   558  Tom resumed his whitewashing, and answered carelessly:
   559  
   560  "Well, maybe it is, and maybe it ain't. All I know, is, it suits Tom
   561  Sawyer."
   562  
   563  "Oh come, now, you don't mean to let on that you LIKE it?"
   564  
   565  The brush continued to move.
   566  
   567  "Like it? Well, I don't see why I oughtn't to like it. Does a boy get
   568  a chance to whitewash a fence every day?"
   569  
   570  That put the thing in a new light. Ben stopped nibbling his apple. Tom
   571  swept his brush daintily back and forth--stepped back to note the
   572  effect--added a touch here and there--criticised the effect again--Ben
   573  watching every move and getting more and more interested, more and more
   574  absorbed. Presently he said:
   575  
   576  "Say, Tom, let ME whitewash a little."
   577  
   578  Tom considered, was about to consent; but he altered his mind:
   579  
   580  "No--no--I reckon it wouldn't hardly do, Ben. You see, Aunt Polly's
   581  awful particular about this fence--right here on the street, you know
   582  --but if it was the back fence I wouldn't mind and SHE wouldn't. Yes,
   583  she's awful particular about this fence; it's got to be done very
   584  careful; I reckon there ain't one boy in a thousand, maybe two
   585  thousand, that can do it the way it's got to be done."
   586  
   587  "No--is that so? Oh come, now--lemme just try. Only just a little--I'd
   588  let YOU, if you was me, Tom."
   589  
   590  "Ben, I'd like to, honest injun; but Aunt Polly--well, Jim wanted to
   591  do it, but she wouldn't let him; Sid wanted to do it, and she wouldn't
   592  let Sid. Now don't you see how I'm fixed? If you was to tackle this
   593  fence and anything was to happen to it--"
   594  
   595  "Oh, shucks, I'll be just as careful. Now lemme try. Say--I'll give
   596  you the core of my apple."
   597  
   598  "Well, here--No, Ben, now don't. I'm afeard--"
   599  
   600  "I'll give you ALL of it!"
   601  
   602  Tom gave up the brush with reluctance in his face, but alacrity in his
   603  heart. And while the late steamer Big Missouri worked and sweated in
   604  the sun, the retired artist sat on a barrel in the shade close by,
   605  dangled his legs, munched his apple, and planned the slaughter of more
   606  innocents. There was no lack of material; boys happened along every
   607  little while; they came to jeer, but remained to whitewash. By the time
   608  Ben was fagged out, Tom had traded the next chance to Billy Fisher for
   609  a kite, in good repair; and when he played out, Johnny Miller bought in
   610  for a dead rat and a string to swing it with--and so on, and so on,
   611  hour after hour. And when the middle of the afternoon came, from being
   612  a poor poverty-stricken boy in the morning, Tom was literally rolling
   613  in wealth. He had besides the things before mentioned, twelve marbles,
   614  part of a jews-harp, a piece of blue bottle-glass to look through, a
   615  spool cannon, a key that wouldn't unlock anything, a fragment of chalk,
   616  a glass stopper of a decanter, a tin soldier, a couple of tadpoles, six
   617  fire-crackers, a kitten with only one eye, a brass doorknob, a
   618  dog-collar--but no dog--the handle of a knife, four pieces of
   619  orange-peel, and a dilapidated old window sash.
   620  
   621  He had had a nice, good, idle time all the while--plenty of company
   622  --and the fence had three coats of whitewash on it! If he hadn't run out
   623  of whitewash he would have bankrupted every boy in the village.
   624  
   625  Tom said to himself that it was not such a hollow world, after all. He
   626  had discovered a great law of human action, without knowing it--namely,
   627  that in order to make a man or a boy covet a thing, it is only
   628  necessary to make the thing difficult to attain. If he had been a great
   629  and wise philosopher, like the writer of this book, he would now have
   630  comprehended that Work consists of whatever a body is OBLIGED to do,
   631  and that Play consists of whatever a body is not obliged to do. And
   632  this would help him to understand why constructing artificial flowers
   633  or performing on a tread-mill is work, while rolling ten-pins or
   634  climbing Mont Blanc is only amusement. There are wealthy gentlemen in
   635  England who drive four-horse passenger-coaches twenty or thirty miles
   636  on a daily line, in the summer, because the privilege costs them
   637  considerable money; but if they were offered wages for the service,
   638  that would turn it into work and then they would resign.
   639  
   640  The boy mused awhile over the substantial change which had taken place
   641  in his worldly circumstances, and then wended toward headquarters to
   642  report.
   643  
   644  
   645  
   646  CHAPTER III
   647  
   648  TOM presented himself before Aunt Polly, who was sitting by an open
   649  window in a pleasant rearward apartment, which was bedroom,
   650  breakfast-room, dining-room, and library, combined. The balmy summer
   651  air, the restful quiet, the odor of the flowers, and the drowsing murmur
   652  of the bees had had their effect, and she was nodding over her knitting
   653  --for she had no company but the cat, and it was asleep in her lap. Her
   654  spectacles were propped up on her gray head for safety. She had thought
   655  that of course Tom had deserted long ago, and she wondered at seeing him
   656  place himself in her power again in this intrepid way. He said: "Mayn't
   657  I go and play now, aunt?"
   658  
   659  "What, a'ready? How much have you done?"
   660  
   661  "It's all done, aunt."
   662  
   663  "Tom, don't lie to me--I can't bear it."
   664  
   665  "I ain't, aunt; it IS all done."
   666  
   667  Aunt Polly placed small trust in such evidence. She went out to see
   668  for herself; and she would have been content to find twenty per cent.
   669  of Tom's statement true. When she found the entire fence whitewashed,
   670  and not only whitewashed but elaborately coated and recoated, and even
   671  a streak added to the ground, her astonishment was almost unspeakable.
   672  She said:
   673  
   674  "Well, I never! There's no getting round it, you can work when you're
   675  a mind to, Tom." And then she diluted the compliment by adding, "But
   676  it's powerful seldom you're a mind to, I'm bound to say. Well, go 'long
   677  and play; but mind you get back some time in a week, or I'll tan you."
   678  
   679  She was so overcome by the splendor of his achievement that she took
   680  him into the closet and selected a choice apple and delivered it to
   681  him, along with an improving lecture upon the added value and flavor a
   682  treat took to itself when it came without sin through virtuous effort.
   683  And while she closed with a happy Scriptural flourish, he "hooked" a
   684  doughnut.
   685  
   686  Then he skipped out, and saw Sid just starting up the outside stairway
   687  that led to the back rooms on the second floor. Clods were handy and
   688  the air was full of them in a twinkling. They raged around Sid like a
   689  hail-storm; and before Aunt Polly could collect her surprised faculties
   690  and sally to the rescue, six or seven clods had taken personal effect,
   691  and Tom was over the fence and gone. There was a gate, but as a general
   692  thing he was too crowded for time to make use of it. His soul was at
   693  peace, now that he had settled with Sid for calling attention to his
   694  black thread and getting him into trouble.
   695  
   696  Tom skirted the block, and came round into a muddy alley that led by
   697  the back of his aunt's cow-stable. He presently got safely beyond the
   698  reach of capture and punishment, and hastened toward the public square
   699  of the village, where two "military" companies of boys had met for
   700  conflict, according to previous appointment. Tom was General of one of
   701  these armies, Joe Harper (a bosom friend) General of the other. These
   702  two great commanders did not condescend to fight in person--that being
   703  better suited to the still smaller fry--but sat together on an eminence
   704  and conducted the field operations by orders delivered through
   705  aides-de-camp. Tom's army won a great victory, after a long and
   706  hard-fought battle. Then the dead were counted, prisoners exchanged,
   707  the terms of the next disagreement agreed upon, and the day for the
   708  necessary battle appointed; after which the armies fell into line and
   709  marched away, and Tom turned homeward alone.
   710  
   711  As he was passing by the house where Jeff Thatcher lived, he saw a new
   712  girl in the garden--a lovely little blue-eyed creature with yellow hair
   713  plaited into two long-tails, white summer frock and embroidered
   714  pantalettes. The fresh-crowned hero fell without firing a shot. A
   715  certain Amy Lawrence vanished out of his heart and left not even a
   716  memory of herself behind. He had thought he loved her to distraction;
   717  he had regarded his passion as adoration; and behold it was only a poor
   718  little evanescent partiality. He had been months winning her; she had
   719  confessed hardly a week ago; he had been the happiest and the proudest
   720  boy in the world only seven short days, and here in one instant of time
   721  she had gone out of his heart like a casual stranger whose visit is
   722  done.
   723  
   724  He worshipped this new angel with furtive eye, till he saw that she
   725  had discovered him; then he pretended he did not know she was present,
   726  and began to "show off" in all sorts of absurd boyish ways, in order to
   727  win her admiration. He kept up this grotesque foolishness for some
   728  time; but by-and-by, while he was in the midst of some dangerous
   729  gymnastic performances, he glanced aside and saw that the little girl
   730  was wending her way toward the house. Tom came up to the fence and
   731  leaned on it, grieving, and hoping she would tarry yet awhile longer.
   732  She halted a moment on the steps and then moved toward the door. Tom
   733  heaved a great sigh as she put her foot on the threshold. But his face
   734  lit up, right away, for she tossed a pansy over the fence a moment
   735  before she disappeared.
   736  
   737  The boy ran around and stopped within a foot or two of the flower, and
   738  then shaded his eyes with his hand and began to look down street as if
   739  he had discovered something of interest going on in that direction.
   740  Presently he picked up a straw and began trying to balance it on his
   741  nose, with his head tilted far back; and as he moved from side to side,
   742  in his efforts, he edged nearer and nearer toward the pansy; finally
   743  his bare foot rested upon it, his pliant toes closed upon it, and he
   744  hopped away with the treasure and disappeared round the corner. But
   745  only for a minute--only while he could button the flower inside his
   746  jacket, next his heart--or next his stomach, possibly, for he was not
   747  much posted in anatomy, and not hypercritical, anyway.
   748  
   749  He returned, now, and hung about the fence till nightfall, "showing
   750  off," as before; but the girl never exhibited herself again, though Tom
   751  comforted himself a little with the hope that she had been near some
   752  window, meantime, and been aware of his attentions. Finally he strode
   753  home reluctantly, with his poor head full of visions.
   754  
   755  All through supper his spirits were so high that his aunt wondered
   756  "what had got into the child." He took a good scolding about clodding
   757  Sid, and did not seem to mind it in the least. He tried to steal sugar
   758  under his aunt's very nose, and got his knuckles rapped for it. He said:
   759  
   760  "Aunt, you don't whack Sid when he takes it."
   761  
   762  "Well, Sid don't torment a body the way you do. You'd be always into
   763  that sugar if I warn't watching you."
   764  
   765  Presently she stepped into the kitchen, and Sid, happy in his
   766  immunity, reached for the sugar-bowl--a sort of glorying over Tom which
   767  was wellnigh unbearable. But Sid's fingers slipped and the bowl dropped
   768  and broke. Tom was in ecstasies. In such ecstasies that he even
   769  controlled his tongue and was silent. He said to himself that he would
   770  not speak a word, even when his aunt came in, but would sit perfectly
   771  still till she asked who did the mischief; and then he would tell, and
   772  there would be nothing so good in the world as to see that pet model
   773  "catch it." He was so brimful of exultation that he could hardly hold
   774  himself when the old lady came back and stood above the wreck
   775  discharging lightnings of wrath from over her spectacles. He said to
   776  himself, "Now it's coming!" And the next instant he was sprawling on
   777  the floor! The potent palm was uplifted to strike again when Tom cried
   778  out:
   779  
   780  "Hold on, now, what 'er you belting ME for?--Sid broke it!"
   781  
   782  Aunt Polly paused, perplexed, and Tom looked for healing pity. But
   783  when she got her tongue again, she only said:
   784  
   785  "Umf! Well, you didn't get a lick amiss, I reckon. You been into some
   786  other audacious mischief when I wasn't around, like enough."
   787  
   788  Then her conscience reproached her, and she yearned to say something
   789  kind and loving; but she judged that this would be construed into a
   790  confession that she had been in the wrong, and discipline forbade that.
   791  So she kept silence, and went about her affairs with a troubled heart.
   792  Tom sulked in a corner and exalted his woes. He knew that in her heart
   793  his aunt was on her knees to him, and he was morosely gratified by the
   794  consciousness of it. He would hang out no signals, he would take notice
   795  of none. He knew that a yearning glance fell upon him, now and then,
   796  through a film of tears, but he refused recognition of it. He pictured
   797  himself lying sick unto death and his aunt bending over him beseeching
   798  one little forgiving word, but he would turn his face to the wall, and
   799  die with that word unsaid. Ah, how would she feel then? And he pictured
   800  himself brought home from the river, dead, with his curls all wet, and
   801  his sore heart at rest. How she would throw herself upon him, and how
   802  her tears would fall like rain, and her lips pray God to give her back
   803  her boy and she would never, never abuse him any more! But he would lie
   804  there cold and white and make no sign--a poor little sufferer, whose
   805  griefs were at an end. He so worked upon his feelings with the pathos
   806  of these dreams, that he had to keep swallowing, he was so like to
   807  choke; and his eyes swam in a blur of water, which overflowed when he
   808  winked, and ran down and trickled from the end of his nose. And such a
   809  luxury to him was this petting of his sorrows, that he could not bear
   810  to have any worldly cheeriness or any grating delight intrude upon it;
   811  it was too sacred for such contact; and so, presently, when his cousin
   812  Mary danced in, all alive with the joy of seeing home again after an
   813  age-long visit of one week to the country, he got up and moved in
   814  clouds and darkness out at one door as she brought song and sunshine in
   815  at the other.
   816  
   817  He wandered far from the accustomed haunts of boys, and sought
   818  desolate places that were in harmony with his spirit. A log raft in the
   819  river invited him, and he seated himself on its outer edge and
   820  contemplated the dreary vastness of the stream, wishing, the while,
   821  that he could only be drowned, all at once and unconsciously, without
   822  undergoing the uncomfortable routine devised by nature. Then he thought
   823  of his flower. He got it out, rumpled and wilted, and it mightily
   824  increased his dismal felicity. He wondered if she would pity him if she
   825  knew? Would she cry, and wish that she had a right to put her arms
   826  around his neck and comfort him? Or would she turn coldly away like all
   827  the hollow world? This picture brought such an agony of pleasurable
   828  suffering that he worked it over and over again in his mind and set it
   829  up in new and varied lights, till he wore it threadbare. At last he
   830  rose up sighing and departed in the darkness.
   831  
   832  About half-past nine or ten o'clock he came along the deserted street
   833  to where the Adored Unknown lived; he paused a moment; no sound fell
   834  upon his listening ear; a candle was casting a dull glow upon the
   835  curtain of a second-story window. Was the sacred presence there? He
   836  climbed the fence, threaded his stealthy way through the plants, till
   837  he stood under that window; he looked up at it long, and with emotion;
   838  then he laid him down on the ground under it, disposing himself upon
   839  his back, with his hands clasped upon his breast and holding his poor
   840  wilted flower. And thus he would die--out in the cold world, with no
   841  shelter over his homeless head, no friendly hand to wipe the
   842  death-damps from his brow, no loving face to bend pityingly over him
   843  when the great agony came. And thus SHE would see him when she looked
   844  out upon the glad morning, and oh! would she drop one little tear upon
   845  his poor, lifeless form, would she heave one little sigh to see a bright
   846  young life so rudely blighted, so untimely cut down?
   847  
   848  The window went up, a maid-servant's discordant voice profaned the
   849  holy calm, and a deluge of water drenched the prone martyr's remains!
   850  
   851  The strangling hero sprang up with a relieving snort. There was a whiz
   852  as of a missile in the air, mingled with the murmur of a curse, a sound
   853  as of shivering glass followed, and a small, vague form went over the
   854  fence and shot away in the gloom.
   855  
   856  Not long after, as Tom, all undressed for bed, was surveying his
   857  drenched garments by the light of a tallow dip, Sid woke up; but if he
   858  had any dim idea of making any "references to allusions," he thought
   859  better of it and held his peace, for there was danger in Tom's eye.
   860  
   861  Tom turned in without the added vexation of prayers, and Sid made
   862  mental note of the omission.
   863  
   864  
   865  
   866  CHAPTER IV
   867  
   868  THE sun rose upon a tranquil world, and beamed down upon the peaceful
   869  village like a benediction. Breakfast over, Aunt Polly had family
   870  worship: it began with a prayer built from the ground up of solid
   871  courses of Scriptural quotations, welded together with a thin mortar of
   872  originality; and from the summit of this she delivered a grim chapter
   873  of the Mosaic Law, as from Sinai.
   874  
   875  Then Tom girded up his loins, so to speak, and went to work to "get
   876  his verses." Sid had learned his lesson days before. Tom bent all his
   877  energies to the memorizing of five verses, and he chose part of the
   878  Sermon on the Mount, because he could find no verses that were shorter.
   879  At the end of half an hour Tom had a vague general idea of his lesson,
   880  but no more, for his mind was traversing the whole field of human
   881  thought, and his hands were busy with distracting recreations. Mary
   882  took his book to hear him recite, and he tried to find his way through
   883  the fog:
   884  
   885  "Blessed are the--a--a--"
   886  
   887  "Poor"--
   888  
   889  "Yes--poor; blessed are the poor--a--a--"
   890  
   891  "In spirit--"
   892  
   893  "In spirit; blessed are the poor in spirit, for they--they--"
   894  
   895  "THEIRS--"
   896  
   897  "For THEIRS. Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom
   898  of heaven. Blessed are they that mourn, for they--they--"
   899  
   900  "Sh--"
   901  
   902  "For they--a--"
   903  
   904  "S, H, A--"
   905  
   906  "For they S, H--Oh, I don't know what it is!"
   907  
   908  "SHALL!"
   909  
   910  "Oh, SHALL! for they shall--for they shall--a--a--shall mourn--a--a--
   911  blessed are they that shall--they that--a--they that shall mourn, for
   912  they shall--a--shall WHAT? Why don't you tell me, Mary?--what do you
   913  want to be so mean for?"
   914  
   915  "Oh, Tom, you poor thick-headed thing, I'm not teasing you. I wouldn't
   916  do that. You must go and learn it again. Don't you be discouraged, Tom,
   917  you'll manage it--and if you do, I'll give you something ever so nice.
   918  There, now, that's a good boy."
   919  
   920  "All right! What is it, Mary, tell me what it is."
   921  
   922  "Never you mind, Tom. You know if I say it's nice, it is nice."
   923  
   924  "You bet you that's so, Mary. All right, I'll tackle it again."
   925  
   926  And he did "tackle it again"--and under the double pressure of
   927  curiosity and prospective gain he did it with such spirit that he
   928  accomplished a shining success. Mary gave him a brand-new "Barlow"
   929  knife worth twelve and a half cents; and the convulsion of delight that
   930  swept his system shook him to his foundations. True, the knife would
   931  not cut anything, but it was a "sure-enough" Barlow, and there was
   932  inconceivable grandeur in that--though where the Western boys ever got
   933  the idea that such a weapon could possibly be counterfeited to its
   934  injury is an imposing mystery and will always remain so, perhaps. Tom
   935  contrived to scarify the cupboard with it, and was arranging to begin
   936  on the bureau, when he was called off to dress for Sunday-school.
   937  
   938  Mary gave him a tin basin of water and a piece of soap, and he went
   939  outside the door and set the basin on a little bench there; then he
   940  dipped the soap in the water and laid it down; turned up his sleeves;
   941  poured out the water on the ground, gently, and then entered the
   942  kitchen and began to wipe his face diligently on the towel behind the
   943  door. But Mary removed the towel and said:
   944  
   945  "Now ain't you ashamed, Tom. You mustn't be so bad. Water won't hurt
   946  you."
   947  
   948  Tom was a trifle disconcerted. The basin was refilled, and this time
   949  he stood over it a little while, gathering resolution; took in a big
   950  breath and began. When he entered the kitchen presently, with both eyes
   951  shut and groping for the towel with his hands, an honorable testimony
   952  of suds and water was dripping from his face. But when he emerged from
   953  the towel, he was not yet satisfactory, for the clean territory stopped
   954  short at his chin and his jaws, like a mask; below and beyond this line
   955  there was a dark expanse of unirrigated soil that spread downward in
   956  front and backward around his neck. Mary took him in hand, and when she
   957  was done with him he was a man and a brother, without distinction of
   958  color, and his saturated hair was neatly brushed, and its short curls
   959  wrought into a dainty and symmetrical general effect. [He privately
   960  smoothed out the curls, with labor and difficulty, and plastered his
   961  hair close down to his head; for he held curls to be effeminate, and
   962  his own filled his life with bitterness.] Then Mary got out a suit of
   963  his clothing that had been used only on Sundays during two years--they
   964  were simply called his "other clothes"--and so by that we know the
   965  size of his wardrobe. The girl "put him to rights" after he had dressed
   966  himself; she buttoned his neat roundabout up to his chin, turned his
   967  vast shirt collar down over his shoulders, brushed him off and crowned
   968  him with his speckled straw hat. He now looked exceedingly improved and
   969  uncomfortable. He was fully as uncomfortable as he looked; for there
   970  was a restraint about whole clothes and cleanliness that galled him. He
   971  hoped that Mary would forget his shoes, but the hope was blighted; she
   972  coated them thoroughly with tallow, as was the custom, and brought them
   973  out. He lost his temper and said he was always being made to do
   974  everything he didn't want to do. But Mary said, persuasively:
   975  
   976  "Please, Tom--that's a good boy."
   977  
   978  So he got into the shoes snarling. Mary was soon ready, and the three
   979  children set out for Sunday-school--a place that Tom hated with his
   980  whole heart; but Sid and Mary were fond of it.
   981  
   982  Sabbath-school hours were from nine to half-past ten; and then church
   983  service. Two of the children always remained for the sermon
   984  voluntarily, and the other always remained too--for stronger reasons.
   985  The church's high-backed, uncushioned pews would seat about three
   986  hundred persons; the edifice was but a small, plain affair, with a sort
   987  of pine board tree-box on top of it for a steeple. At the door Tom
   988  dropped back a step and accosted a Sunday-dressed comrade:
   989  
   990  "Say, Billy, got a yaller ticket?"
   991  
   992  "Yes."
   993  
   994  "What'll you take for her?"
   995  
   996  "What'll you give?"
   997  
   998  "Piece of lickrish and a fish-hook."
   999  
  1000  "Less see 'em."
  1001  
  1002  Tom exhibited. They were satisfactory, and the property changed hands.
  1003  Then Tom traded a couple of white alleys for three red tickets, and
  1004  some small trifle or other for a couple of blue ones. He waylaid other
  1005  boys as they came, and went on buying tickets of various colors ten or
  1006  fifteen minutes longer. He entered the church, now, with a swarm of
  1007  clean and noisy boys and girls, proceeded to his seat and started a
  1008  quarrel with the first boy that came handy. The teacher, a grave,
  1009  elderly man, interfered; then turned his back a moment and Tom pulled a
  1010  boy's hair in the next bench, and was absorbed in his book when the boy
  1011  turned around; stuck a pin in another boy, presently, in order to hear
  1012  him say "Ouch!" and got a new reprimand from his teacher. Tom's whole
  1013  class were of a pattern--restless, noisy, and troublesome. When they
  1014  came to recite their lessons, not one of them knew his verses
  1015  perfectly, but had to be prompted all along. However, they worried
  1016  through, and each got his reward--in small blue tickets, each with a
  1017  passage of Scripture on it; each blue ticket was pay for two verses of
  1018  the recitation. Ten blue tickets equalled a red one, and could be
  1019  exchanged for it; ten red tickets equalled a yellow one; for ten yellow
  1020  tickets the superintendent gave a very plainly bound Bible (worth forty
  1021  cents in those easy times) to the pupil. How many of my readers would
  1022  have the industry and application to memorize two thousand verses, even
  1023  for a Dore Bible? And yet Mary had acquired two Bibles in this way--it
  1024  was the patient work of two years--and a boy of German parentage had
  1025  won four or five. He once recited three thousand verses without
  1026  stopping; but the strain upon his mental faculties was too great, and
  1027  he was little better than an idiot from that day forth--a grievous
  1028  misfortune for the school, for on great occasions, before company, the
  1029  superintendent (as Tom expressed it) had always made this boy come out
  1030  and "spread himself." Only the older pupils managed to keep their
  1031  tickets and stick to their tedious work long enough to get a Bible, and
  1032  so the delivery of one of these prizes was a rare and noteworthy
  1033  circumstance; the successful pupil was so great and conspicuous for
  1034  that day that on the spot every scholar's heart was fired with a fresh
  1035  ambition that often lasted a couple of weeks. It is possible that Tom's
  1036  mental stomach had never really hungered for one of those prizes, but
  1037  unquestionably his entire being had for many a day longed for the glory
  1038  and the eclat that came with it.
  1039  
  1040  In due course the superintendent stood up in front of the pulpit, with
  1041  a closed hymn-book in his hand and his forefinger inserted between its
  1042  leaves, and commanded attention. When a Sunday-school superintendent
  1043  makes his customary little speech, a hymn-book in the hand is as
  1044  necessary as is the inevitable sheet of music in the hand of a singer
  1045  who stands forward on the platform and sings a solo at a concert
  1046  --though why, is a mystery: for neither the hymn-book nor the sheet of
  1047  music is ever referred to by the sufferer. This superintendent was a
  1048  slim creature of thirty-five, with a sandy goatee and short sandy hair;
  1049  he wore a stiff standing-collar whose upper edge almost reached his
  1050  ears and whose sharp points curved forward abreast the corners of his
  1051  mouth--a fence that compelled a straight lookout ahead, and a turning
  1052  of the whole body when a side view was required; his chin was propped
  1053  on a spreading cravat which was as broad and as long as a bank-note,
  1054  and had fringed ends; his boot toes were turned sharply up, in the
  1055  fashion of the day, like sleigh-runners--an effect patiently and
  1056  laboriously produced by the young men by sitting with their toes
  1057  pressed against a wall for hours together. Mr. Walters was very earnest
  1058  of mien, and very sincere and honest at heart; and he held sacred
  1059  things and places in such reverence, and so separated them from worldly
  1060  matters, that unconsciously to himself his Sunday-school voice had
  1061  acquired a peculiar intonation which was wholly absent on week-days. He
  1062  began after this fashion:
  1063  
  1064  "Now, children, I want you all to sit up just as straight and pretty
  1065  as you can and give me all your attention for a minute or two. There
  1066  --that is it. That is the way good little boys and girls should do. I see
  1067  one little girl who is looking out of the window--I am afraid she
  1068  thinks I am out there somewhere--perhaps up in one of the trees making
  1069  a speech to the little birds. [Applausive titter.] I want to tell you
  1070  how good it makes me feel to see so many bright, clean little faces
  1071  assembled in a place like this, learning to do right and be good." And
  1072  so forth and so on. It is not necessary to set down the rest of the
  1073  oration. It was of a pattern which does not vary, and so it is familiar
  1074  to us all.
  1075  
  1076  The latter third of the speech was marred by the resumption of fights
  1077  and other recreations among certain of the bad boys, and by fidgetings
  1078  and whisperings that extended far and wide, washing even to the bases
  1079  of isolated and incorruptible rocks like Sid and Mary. But now every
  1080  sound ceased suddenly, with the subsidence of Mr. Walters' voice, and
  1081  the conclusion of the speech was received with a burst of silent
  1082  gratitude.
  1083  
  1084  A good part of the whispering had been occasioned by an event which
  1085  was more or less rare--the entrance of visitors: lawyer Thatcher,
  1086  accompanied by a very feeble and aged man; a fine, portly, middle-aged
  1087  gentleman with iron-gray hair; and a dignified lady who was doubtless
  1088  the latter's wife. The lady was leading a child. Tom had been restless
  1089  and full of chafings and repinings; conscience-smitten, too--he could
  1090  not meet Amy Lawrence's eye, he could not brook her loving gaze. But
  1091  when he saw this small new-comer his soul was all ablaze with bliss in
  1092  a moment. The next moment he was "showing off" with all his might
  1093  --cuffing boys, pulling hair, making faces--in a word, using every art
  1094  that seemed likely to fascinate a girl and win her applause. His
  1095  exaltation had but one alloy--the memory of his humiliation in this
  1096  angel's garden--and that record in sand was fast washing out, under
  1097  the waves of happiness that were sweeping over it now.
  1098  
  1099  The visitors were given the highest seat of honor, and as soon as Mr.
  1100  Walters' speech was finished, he introduced them to the school. The
  1101  middle-aged man turned out to be a prodigious personage--no less a one
  1102  than the county judge--altogether the most august creation these
  1103  children had ever looked upon--and they wondered what kind of material
  1104  he was made of--and they half wanted to hear him roar, and were half
  1105  afraid he might, too. He was from Constantinople, twelve miles away--so
  1106  he had travelled, and seen the world--these very eyes had looked upon
  1107  the county court-house--which was said to have a tin roof. The awe
  1108  which these reflections inspired was attested by the impressive silence
  1109  and the ranks of staring eyes. This was the great Judge Thatcher,
  1110  brother of their own lawyer. Jeff Thatcher immediately went forward, to
  1111  be familiar with the great man and be envied by the school. It would
  1112  have been music to his soul to hear the whisperings:
  1113  
  1114  "Look at him, Jim! He's a going up there. Say--look! he's a going to
  1115  shake hands with him--he IS shaking hands with him! By jings, don't you
  1116  wish you was Jeff?"
  1117  
  1118  Mr. Walters fell to "showing off," with all sorts of official
  1119  bustlings and activities, giving orders, delivering judgments,
  1120  discharging directions here, there, everywhere that he could find a
  1121  target. The librarian "showed off"--running hither and thither with his
  1122  arms full of books and making a deal of the splutter and fuss that
  1123  insect authority delights in. The young lady teachers "showed off"
  1124  --bending sweetly over pupils that were lately being boxed, lifting
  1125  pretty warning fingers at bad little boys and patting good ones
  1126  lovingly. The young gentlemen teachers "showed off" with small
  1127  scoldings and other little displays of authority and fine attention to
  1128  discipline--and most of the teachers, of both sexes, found business up
  1129  at the library, by the pulpit; and it was business that frequently had
  1130  to be done over again two or three times (with much seeming vexation).
  1131  The little girls "showed off" in various ways, and the little boys
  1132  "showed off" with such diligence that the air was thick with paper wads
  1133  and the murmur of scufflings. And above it all the great man sat and
  1134  beamed a majestic judicial smile upon all the house, and warmed himself
  1135  in the sun of his own grandeur--for he was "showing off," too.
  1136  
  1137  There was only one thing wanting to make Mr. Walters' ecstasy
  1138  complete, and that was a chance to deliver a Bible-prize and exhibit a
  1139  prodigy. Several pupils had a few yellow tickets, but none had enough
  1140  --he had been around among the star pupils inquiring. He would have given
  1141  worlds, now, to have that German lad back again with a sound mind.
  1142  
  1143  And now at this moment, when hope was dead, Tom Sawyer came forward
  1144  with nine yellow tickets, nine red tickets, and ten blue ones, and
  1145  demanded a Bible. This was a thunderbolt out of a clear sky. Walters
  1146  was not expecting an application from this source for the next ten
  1147  years. But there was no getting around it--here were the certified
  1148  checks, and they were good for their face. Tom was therefore elevated
  1149  to a place with the Judge and the other elect, and the great news was
  1150  announced from headquarters. It was the most stunning surprise of the
  1151  decade, and so profound was the sensation that it lifted the new hero
  1152  up to the judicial one's altitude, and the school had two marvels to
  1153  gaze upon in place of one. The boys were all eaten up with envy--but
  1154  those that suffered the bitterest pangs were those who perceived too
  1155  late that they themselves had contributed to this hated splendor by
  1156  trading tickets to Tom for the wealth he had amassed in selling
  1157  whitewashing privileges. These despised themselves, as being the dupes
  1158  of a wily fraud, a guileful snake in the grass.
  1159  
  1160  The prize was delivered to Tom with as much effusion as the
  1161  superintendent could pump up under the circumstances; but it lacked
  1162  somewhat of the true gush, for the poor fellow's instinct taught him
  1163  that there was a mystery here that could not well bear the light,
  1164  perhaps; it was simply preposterous that this boy had warehoused two
  1165  thousand sheaves of Scriptural wisdom on his premises--a dozen would
  1166  strain his capacity, without a doubt.
  1167  
  1168  Amy Lawrence was proud and glad, and she tried to make Tom see it in
  1169  her face--but he wouldn't look. She wondered; then she was just a grain
  1170  troubled; next a dim suspicion came and went--came again; she watched;
  1171  a furtive glance told her worlds--and then her heart broke, and she was
  1172  jealous, and angry, and the tears came and she hated everybody. Tom
  1173  most of all (she thought).
  1174  
  1175  Tom was introduced to the Judge; but his tongue was tied, his breath
  1176  would hardly come, his heart quaked--partly because of the awful
  1177  greatness of the man, but mainly because he was her parent. He would
  1178  have liked to fall down and worship him, if it were in the dark. The
  1179  Judge put his hand on Tom's head and called him a fine little man, and
  1180  asked him what his name was. The boy stammered, gasped, and got it out:
  1181  
  1182  "Tom."
  1183  
  1184  "Oh, no, not Tom--it is--"
  1185  
  1186  "Thomas."
  1187  
  1188  "Ah, that's it. I thought there was more to it, maybe. That's very
  1189  well. But you've another one I daresay, and you'll tell it to me, won't
  1190  you?"
  1191  
  1192  "Tell the gentleman your other name, Thomas," said Walters, "and say
  1193  sir. You mustn't forget your manners."
  1194  
  1195  "Thomas Sawyer--sir."
  1196  
  1197  "That's it! That's a good boy. Fine boy. Fine, manly little fellow.
  1198  Two thousand verses is a great many--very, very great many. And you
  1199  never can be sorry for the trouble you took to learn them; for
  1200  knowledge is worth more than anything there is in the world; it's what
  1201  makes great men and good men; you'll be a great man and a good man
  1202  yourself, some day, Thomas, and then you'll look back and say, It's all
  1203  owing to the precious Sunday-school privileges of my boyhood--it's all
  1204  owing to my dear teachers that taught me to learn--it's all owing to
  1205  the good superintendent, who encouraged me, and watched over me, and
  1206  gave me a beautiful Bible--a splendid elegant Bible--to keep and have
  1207  it all for my own, always--it's all owing to right bringing up! That is
  1208  what you will say, Thomas--and you wouldn't take any money for those
  1209  two thousand verses--no indeed you wouldn't. And now you wouldn't mind
  1210  telling me and this lady some of the things you've learned--no, I know
  1211  you wouldn't--for we are proud of little boys that learn. Now, no
  1212  doubt you know the names of all the twelve disciples. Won't you tell us
  1213  the names of the first two that were appointed?"
  1214  
  1215  Tom was tugging at a button-hole and looking sheepish. He blushed,
  1216  now, and his eyes fell. Mr. Walters' heart sank within him. He said to
  1217  himself, it is not possible that the boy can answer the simplest
  1218  question--why DID the Judge ask him? Yet he felt obliged to speak up
  1219  and say:
  1220  
  1221  "Answer the gentleman, Thomas--don't be afraid."
  1222  
  1223  Tom still hung fire.
  1224  
  1225  "Now I know you'll tell me," said the lady. "The names of the first
  1226  two disciples were--"
  1227  
  1228  "DAVID AND GOLIAH!"
  1229  
  1230  Let us draw the curtain of charity over the rest of the scene.
  1231  
  1232  
  1233  
  1234  CHAPTER V
  1235  
  1236  ABOUT half-past ten the cracked bell of the small church began to
  1237  ring, and presently the people began to gather for the morning sermon.
  1238  The Sunday-school children distributed themselves about the house and
  1239  occupied pews with their parents, so as to be under supervision. Aunt
  1240  Polly came, and Tom and Sid and Mary sat with her--Tom being placed
  1241  next the aisle, in order that he might be as far away from the open
  1242  window and the seductive outside summer scenes as possible. The crowd
  1243  filed up the aisles: the aged and needy postmaster, who had seen better
  1244  days; the mayor and his wife--for they had a mayor there, among other
  1245  unnecessaries; the justice of the peace; the widow Douglass, fair,
  1246  smart, and forty, a generous, good-hearted soul and well-to-do, her
  1247  hill mansion the only palace in the town, and the most hospitable and
  1248  much the most lavish in the matter of festivities that St. Petersburg
  1249  could boast; the bent and venerable Major and Mrs. Ward; lawyer
  1250  Riverson, the new notable from a distance; next the belle of the
  1251  village, followed by a troop of lawn-clad and ribbon-decked young
  1252  heart-breakers; then all the young clerks in town in a body--for they
  1253  had stood in the vestibule sucking their cane-heads, a circling wall of
  1254  oiled and simpering admirers, till the last girl had run their gantlet;
  1255  and last of all came the Model Boy, Willie Mufferson, taking as heedful
  1256  care of his mother as if she were cut glass. He always brought his
  1257  mother to church, and was the pride of all the matrons. The boys all
  1258  hated him, he was so good. And besides, he had been "thrown up to them"
  1259  so much. His white handkerchief was hanging out of his pocket behind, as
  1260  usual on Sundays--accidentally. Tom had no handkerchief, and he looked
  1261  upon boys who had as snobs.
  1262  
  1263  The congregation being fully assembled, now, the bell rang once more,
  1264  to warn laggards and stragglers, and then a solemn hush fell upon the
  1265  church which was only broken by the tittering and whispering of the
  1266  choir in the gallery. The choir always tittered and whispered all
  1267  through service. There was once a church choir that was not ill-bred,
  1268  but I have forgotten where it was, now. It was a great many years ago,
  1269  and I can scarcely remember anything about it, but I think it was in
  1270  some foreign country.
  1271  
  1272  The minister gave out the hymn, and read it through with a relish, in
  1273  a peculiar style which was much admired in that part of the country.
  1274  His voice began on a medium key and climbed steadily up till it reached
  1275  a certain point, where it bore with strong emphasis upon the topmost
  1276  word and then plunged down as if from a spring-board:
  1277  
  1278    Shall I be car-ri-ed toe the skies, on flow'ry BEDS of ease,
  1279  
  1280    Whilst others fight to win the prize, and sail thro' BLOODY seas?
  1281  
  1282  He was regarded as a wonderful reader. At church "sociables" he was
  1283  always called upon to read poetry; and when he was through, the ladies
  1284  would lift up their hands and let them fall helplessly in their laps,
  1285  and "wall" their eyes, and shake their heads, as much as to say, "Words
  1286  cannot express it; it is too beautiful, TOO beautiful for this mortal
  1287  earth."
  1288  
  1289  After the hymn had been sung, the Rev. Mr. Sprague turned himself into
  1290  a bulletin-board, and read off "notices" of meetings and societies and
  1291  things till it seemed that the list would stretch out to the crack of
  1292  doom--a queer custom which is still kept up in America, even in cities,
  1293  away here in this age of abundant newspapers. Often, the less there is
  1294  to justify a traditional custom, the harder it is to get rid of it.
  1295  
  1296  And now the minister prayed. A good, generous prayer it was, and went
  1297  into details: it pleaded for the church, and the little children of the
  1298  church; for the other churches of the village; for the village itself;
  1299  for the county; for the State; for the State officers; for the United
  1300  States; for the churches of the United States; for Congress; for the
  1301  President; for the officers of the Government; for poor sailors, tossed
  1302  by stormy seas; for the oppressed millions groaning under the heel of
  1303  European monarchies and Oriental despotisms; for such as have the light
  1304  and the good tidings, and yet have not eyes to see nor ears to hear
  1305  withal; for the heathen in the far islands of the sea; and closed with
  1306  a supplication that the words he was about to speak might find grace
  1307  and favor, and be as seed sown in fertile ground, yielding in time a
  1308  grateful harvest of good. Amen.
  1309  
  1310  There was a rustling of dresses, and the standing congregation sat
  1311  down. The boy whose history this book relates did not enjoy the prayer,
  1312  he only endured it--if he even did that much. He was restive all
  1313  through it; he kept tally of the details of the prayer, unconsciously
  1314  --for he was not listening, but he knew the ground of old, and the
  1315  clergyman's regular route over it--and when a little trifle of new
  1316  matter was interlarded, his ear detected it and his whole nature
  1317  resented it; he considered additions unfair, and scoundrelly. In the
  1318  midst of the prayer a fly had lit on the back of the pew in front of
  1319  him and tortured his spirit by calmly rubbing its hands together,
  1320  embracing its head with its arms, and polishing it so vigorously that
  1321  it seemed to almost part company with the body, and the slender thread
  1322  of a neck was exposed to view; scraping its wings with its hind legs
  1323  and smoothing them to its body as if they had been coat-tails; going
  1324  through its whole toilet as tranquilly as if it knew it was perfectly
  1325  safe. As indeed it was; for as sorely as Tom's hands itched to grab for
  1326  it they did not dare--he believed his soul would be instantly destroyed
  1327  if he did such a thing while the prayer was going on. But with the
  1328  closing sentence his hand began to curve and steal forward; and the
  1329  instant the "Amen" was out the fly was a prisoner of war. His aunt
  1330  detected the act and made him let it go.
  1331  
  1332  The minister gave out his text and droned along monotonously through
  1333  an argument that was so prosy that many a head by and by began to nod
  1334  --and yet it was an argument that dealt in limitless fire and brimstone
  1335  and thinned the predestined elect down to a company so small as to be
  1336  hardly worth the saving. Tom counted the pages of the sermon; after
  1337  church he always knew how many pages there had been, but he seldom knew
  1338  anything else about the discourse. However, this time he was really
  1339  interested for a little while. The minister made a grand and moving
  1340  picture of the assembling together of the world's hosts at the
  1341  millennium when the lion and the lamb should lie down together and a
  1342  little child should lead them. But the pathos, the lesson, the moral of
  1343  the great spectacle were lost upon the boy; he only thought of the
  1344  conspicuousness of the principal character before the on-looking
  1345  nations; his face lit with the thought, and he said to himself that he
  1346  wished he could be that child, if it was a tame lion.
  1347  
  1348  Now he lapsed into suffering again, as the dry argument was resumed.
  1349  Presently he bethought him of a treasure he had and got it out. It was
  1350  a large black beetle with formidable jaws--a "pinchbug," he called it.
  1351  It was in a percussion-cap box. The first thing the beetle did was to
  1352  take him by the finger. A natural fillip followed, the beetle went
  1353  floundering into the aisle and lit on its back, and the hurt finger
  1354  went into the boy's mouth. The beetle lay there working its helpless
  1355  legs, unable to turn over. Tom eyed it, and longed for it; but it was
  1356  safe out of his reach. Other people uninterested in the sermon found
  1357  relief in the beetle, and they eyed it too. Presently a vagrant poodle
  1358  dog came idling along, sad at heart, lazy with the summer softness and
  1359  the quiet, weary of captivity, sighing for change. He spied the beetle;
  1360  the drooping tail lifted and wagged. He surveyed the prize; walked
  1361  around it; smelt at it from a safe distance; walked around it again;
  1362  grew bolder, and took a closer smell; then lifted his lip and made a
  1363  gingerly snatch at it, just missing it; made another, and another;
  1364  began to enjoy the diversion; subsided to his stomach with the beetle
  1365  between his paws, and continued his experiments; grew weary at last,
  1366  and then indifferent and absent-minded. His head nodded, and little by
  1367  little his chin descended and touched the enemy, who seized it. There
  1368  was a sharp yelp, a flirt of the poodle's head, and the beetle fell a
  1369  couple of yards away, and lit on its back once more. The neighboring
  1370  spectators shook with a gentle inward joy, several faces went behind
  1371  fans and handkerchiefs, and Tom was entirely happy. The dog looked
  1372  foolish, and probably felt so; but there was resentment in his heart,
  1373  too, and a craving for revenge. So he went to the beetle and began a
  1374  wary attack on it again; jumping at it from every point of a circle,
  1375  lighting with his fore-paws within an inch of the creature, making even
  1376  closer snatches at it with his teeth, and jerking his head till his
  1377  ears flapped again. But he grew tired once more, after a while; tried
  1378  to amuse himself with a fly but found no relief; followed an ant
  1379  around, with his nose close to the floor, and quickly wearied of that;
  1380  yawned, sighed, forgot the beetle entirely, and sat down on it. Then
  1381  there was a wild yelp of agony and the poodle went sailing up the
  1382  aisle; the yelps continued, and so did the dog; he crossed the house in
  1383  front of the altar; he flew down the other aisle; he crossed before the
  1384  doors; he clamored up the home-stretch; his anguish grew with his
  1385  progress, till presently he was but a woolly comet moving in its orbit
  1386  with the gleam and the speed of light. At last the frantic sufferer
  1387  sheered from its course, and sprang into its master's lap; he flung it
  1388  out of the window, and the voice of distress quickly thinned away and
  1389  died in the distance.
  1390  
  1391  By this time the whole church was red-faced and suffocating with
  1392  suppressed laughter, and the sermon had come to a dead standstill. The
  1393  discourse was resumed presently, but it went lame and halting, all
  1394  possibility of impressiveness being at an end; for even the gravest
  1395  sentiments were constantly being received with a smothered burst of
  1396  unholy mirth, under cover of some remote pew-back, as if the poor
  1397  parson had said a rarely facetious thing. It was a genuine relief to
  1398  the whole congregation when the ordeal was over and the benediction
  1399  pronounced.
  1400  
  1401  Tom Sawyer went home quite cheerful, thinking to himself that there
  1402  was some satisfaction about divine service when there was a bit of
  1403  variety in it. He had but one marring thought; he was willing that the
  1404  dog should play with his pinchbug, but he did not think it was upright
  1405  in him to carry it off.
  1406  
  1407  
  1408  
  1409  CHAPTER VI
  1410  
  1411  MONDAY morning found Tom Sawyer miserable. Monday morning always found
  1412  him so--because it began another week's slow suffering in school. He
  1413  generally began that day with wishing he had had no intervening
  1414  holiday, it made the going into captivity and fetters again so much
  1415  more odious.
  1416  
  1417  Tom lay thinking. Presently it occurred to him that he wished he was
  1418  sick; then he could stay home from school. Here was a vague
  1419  possibility. He canvassed his system. No ailment was found, and he
  1420  investigated again. This time he thought he could detect colicky
  1421  symptoms, and he began to encourage them with considerable hope. But
  1422  they soon grew feeble, and presently died wholly away. He reflected
  1423  further. Suddenly he discovered something. One of his upper front teeth
  1424  was loose. This was lucky; he was about to begin to groan, as a
  1425  "starter," as he called it, when it occurred to him that if he came
  1426  into court with that argument, his aunt would pull it out, and that
  1427  would hurt. So he thought he would hold the tooth in reserve for the
  1428  present, and seek further. Nothing offered for some little time, and
  1429  then he remembered hearing the doctor tell about a certain thing that
  1430  laid up a patient for two or three weeks and threatened to make him
  1431  lose a finger. So the boy eagerly drew his sore toe from under the
  1432  sheet and held it up for inspection. But now he did not know the
  1433  necessary symptoms. However, it seemed well worth while to chance it,
  1434  so he fell to groaning with considerable spirit.
  1435  
  1436  But Sid slept on unconscious.
  1437  
  1438  Tom groaned louder, and fancied that he began to feel pain in the toe.
  1439  
  1440  No result from Sid.
  1441  
  1442  Tom was panting with his exertions by this time. He took a rest and
  1443  then swelled himself up and fetched a succession of admirable groans.
  1444  
  1445  Sid snored on.
  1446  
  1447  Tom was aggravated. He said, "Sid, Sid!" and shook him. This course
  1448  worked well, and Tom began to groan again. Sid yawned, stretched, then
  1449  brought himself up on his elbow with a snort, and began to stare at
  1450  Tom. Tom went on groaning. Sid said:
  1451  
  1452  "Tom! Say, Tom!" [No response.] "Here, Tom! TOM! What is the matter,
  1453  Tom?" And he shook him and looked in his face anxiously.
  1454  
  1455  Tom moaned out:
  1456  
  1457  "Oh, don't, Sid. Don't joggle me."
  1458  
  1459  "Why, what's the matter, Tom? I must call auntie."
  1460  
  1461  "No--never mind. It'll be over by and by, maybe. Don't call anybody."
  1462  
  1463  "But I must! DON'T groan so, Tom, it's awful. How long you been this
  1464  way?"
  1465  
  1466  "Hours. Ouch! Oh, don't stir so, Sid, you'll kill me."
  1467  
  1468  "Tom, why didn't you wake me sooner? Oh, Tom, DON'T! It makes my
  1469  flesh crawl to hear you. Tom, what is the matter?"
  1470  
  1471  "I forgive you everything, Sid. [Groan.] Everything you've ever done
  1472  to me. When I'm gone--"
  1473  
  1474  "Oh, Tom, you ain't dying, are you? Don't, Tom--oh, don't. Maybe--"
  1475  
  1476  "I forgive everybody, Sid. [Groan.] Tell 'em so, Sid. And Sid, you
  1477  give my window-sash and my cat with one eye to that new girl that's
  1478  come to town, and tell her--"
  1479  
  1480  But Sid had snatched his clothes and gone. Tom was suffering in
  1481  reality, now, so handsomely was his imagination working, and so his
  1482  groans had gathered quite a genuine tone.
  1483  
  1484  Sid flew down-stairs and said:
  1485  
  1486  "Oh, Aunt Polly, come! Tom's dying!"
  1487  
  1488  "Dying!"
  1489  
  1490  "Yes'm. Don't wait--come quick!"
  1491  
  1492  "Rubbage! I don't believe it!"
  1493  
  1494  But she fled up-stairs, nevertheless, with Sid and Mary at her heels.
  1495  And her face grew white, too, and her lip trembled. When she reached
  1496  the bedside she gasped out:
  1497  
  1498  "You, Tom! Tom, what's the matter with you?"
  1499  
  1500  "Oh, auntie, I'm--"
  1501  
  1502  "What's the matter with you--what is the matter with you, child?"
  1503  
  1504  "Oh, auntie, my sore toe's mortified!"
  1505  
  1506  The old lady sank down into a chair and laughed a little, then cried a
  1507  little, then did both together. This restored her and she said:
  1508  
  1509  "Tom, what a turn you did give me. Now you shut up that nonsense and
  1510  climb out of this."
  1511  
  1512  The groans ceased and the pain vanished from the toe. The boy felt a
  1513  little foolish, and he said:
  1514  
  1515  "Aunt Polly, it SEEMED mortified, and it hurt so I never minded my
  1516  tooth at all."
  1517  
  1518  "Your tooth, indeed! What's the matter with your tooth?"
  1519  
  1520  "One of them's loose, and it aches perfectly awful."
  1521  
  1522  "There, there, now, don't begin that groaning again. Open your mouth.
  1523  Well--your tooth IS loose, but you're not going to die about that.
  1524  Mary, get me a silk thread, and a chunk of fire out of the kitchen."
  1525  
  1526  Tom said:
  1527  
  1528  "Oh, please, auntie, don't pull it out. It don't hurt any more. I wish
  1529  I may never stir if it does. Please don't, auntie. I don't want to stay
  1530  home from school."
  1531  
  1532  "Oh, you don't, don't you? So all this row was because you thought
  1533  you'd get to stay home from school and go a-fishing? Tom, Tom, I love
  1534  you so, and you seem to try every way you can to break my old heart
  1535  with your outrageousness." By this time the dental instruments were
  1536  ready. The old lady made one end of the silk thread fast to Tom's tooth
  1537  with a loop and tied the other to the bedpost. Then she seized the
  1538  chunk of fire and suddenly thrust it almost into the boy's face. The
  1539  tooth hung dangling by the bedpost, now.
  1540  
  1541  But all trials bring their compensations. As Tom wended to school
  1542  after breakfast, he was the envy of every boy he met because the gap in
  1543  his upper row of teeth enabled him to expectorate in a new and
  1544  admirable way. He gathered quite a following of lads interested in the
  1545  exhibition; and one that had cut his finger and had been a centre of
  1546  fascination and homage up to this time, now found himself suddenly
  1547  without an adherent, and shorn of his glory. His heart was heavy, and
  1548  he said with a disdain which he did not feel that it wasn't anything to
  1549  spit like Tom Sawyer; but another boy said, "Sour grapes!" and he
  1550  wandered away a dismantled hero.
  1551  
  1552  Shortly Tom came upon the juvenile pariah of the village, Huckleberry
  1553  Finn, son of the town drunkard. Huckleberry was cordially hated and
  1554  dreaded by all the mothers of the town, because he was idle and lawless
  1555  and vulgar and bad--and because all their children admired him so, and
  1556  delighted in his forbidden society, and wished they dared to be like
  1557  him. Tom was like the rest of the respectable boys, in that he envied
  1558  Huckleberry his gaudy outcast condition, and was under strict orders
  1559  not to play with him. So he played with him every time he got a chance.
  1560  Huckleberry was always dressed in the cast-off clothes of full-grown
  1561  men, and they were in perennial bloom and fluttering with rags. His hat
  1562  was a vast ruin with a wide crescent lopped out of its brim; his coat,
  1563  when he wore one, hung nearly to his heels and had the rearward buttons
  1564  far down the back; but one suspender supported his trousers; the seat
  1565  of the trousers bagged low and contained nothing, the fringed legs
  1566  dragged in the dirt when not rolled up.
  1567  
  1568  Huckleberry came and went, at his own free will. He slept on doorsteps
  1569  in fine weather and in empty hogsheads in wet; he did not have to go to
  1570  school or to church, or call any being master or obey anybody; he could
  1571  go fishing or swimming when and where he chose, and stay as long as it
  1572  suited him; nobody forbade him to fight; he could sit up as late as he
  1573  pleased; he was always the first boy that went barefoot in the spring
  1574  and the last to resume leather in the fall; he never had to wash, nor
  1575  put on clean clothes; he could swear wonderfully. In a word, everything
  1576  that goes to make life precious that boy had. So thought every
  1577  harassed, hampered, respectable boy in St. Petersburg.
  1578  
  1579  Tom hailed the romantic outcast:
  1580  
  1581  "Hello, Huckleberry!"
  1582  
  1583  "Hello yourself, and see how you like it."
  1584  
  1585  "What's that you got?"
  1586  
  1587  "Dead cat."
  1588  
  1589  "Lemme see him, Huck. My, he's pretty stiff. Where'd you get him?"
  1590  
  1591  "Bought him off'n a boy."
  1592  
  1593  "What did you give?"
  1594  
  1595  "I give a blue ticket and a bladder that I got at the slaughter-house."
  1596  
  1597  "Where'd you get the blue ticket?"
  1598  
  1599  "Bought it off'n Ben Rogers two weeks ago for a hoop-stick."
  1600  
  1601  "Say--what is dead cats good for, Huck?"
  1602  
  1603  "Good for? Cure warts with."
  1604  
  1605  "No! Is that so? I know something that's better."
  1606  
  1607  "I bet you don't. What is it?"
  1608  
  1609  "Why, spunk-water."
  1610  
  1611  "Spunk-water! I wouldn't give a dern for spunk-water."
  1612  
  1613  "You wouldn't, wouldn't you? D'you ever try it?"
  1614  
  1615  "No, I hain't. But Bob Tanner did."
  1616  
  1617  "Who told you so!"
  1618  
  1619  "Why, he told Jeff Thatcher, and Jeff told Johnny Baker, and Johnny
  1620  told Jim Hollis, and Jim told Ben Rogers, and Ben told a nigger, and
  1621  the nigger told me. There now!"
  1622  
  1623  "Well, what of it? They'll all lie. Leastways all but the nigger. I
  1624  don't know HIM. But I never see a nigger that WOULDN'T lie. Shucks! Now
  1625  you tell me how Bob Tanner done it, Huck."
  1626  
  1627  "Why, he took and dipped his hand in a rotten stump where the
  1628  rain-water was."
  1629  
  1630  "In the daytime?"
  1631  
  1632  "Certainly."
  1633  
  1634  "With his face to the stump?"
  1635  
  1636  "Yes. Least I reckon so."
  1637  
  1638  "Did he say anything?"
  1639  
  1640  "I don't reckon he did. I don't know."
  1641  
  1642  "Aha! Talk about trying to cure warts with spunk-water such a blame
  1643  fool way as that! Why, that ain't a-going to do any good. You got to go
  1644  all by yourself, to the middle of the woods, where you know there's a
  1645  spunk-water stump, and just as it's midnight you back up against the
  1646  stump and jam your hand in and say:
  1647  
  1648    'Barley-corn, barley-corn, injun-meal shorts,
  1649     Spunk-water, spunk-water, swaller these warts,'
  1650  
  1651  and then walk away quick, eleven steps, with your eyes shut, and then
  1652  turn around three times and walk home without speaking to anybody.
  1653  Because if you speak the charm's busted."
  1654  
  1655  "Well, that sounds like a good way; but that ain't the way Bob Tanner
  1656  done."
  1657  
  1658  "No, sir, you can bet he didn't, becuz he's the wartiest boy in this
  1659  town; and he wouldn't have a wart on him if he'd knowed how to work
  1660  spunk-water. I've took off thousands of warts off of my hands that way,
  1661  Huck. I play with frogs so much that I've always got considerable many
  1662  warts. Sometimes I take 'em off with a bean."
  1663  
  1664  "Yes, bean's good. I've done that."
  1665  
  1666  "Have you? What's your way?"
  1667  
  1668  "You take and split the bean, and cut the wart so as to get some
  1669  blood, and then you put the blood on one piece of the bean and take and
  1670  dig a hole and bury it 'bout midnight at the crossroads in the dark of
  1671  the moon, and then you burn up the rest of the bean. You see that piece
  1672  that's got the blood on it will keep drawing and drawing, trying to
  1673  fetch the other piece to it, and so that helps the blood to draw the
  1674  wart, and pretty soon off she comes."
  1675  
  1676  "Yes, that's it, Huck--that's it; though when you're burying it if you
  1677  say 'Down bean; off wart; come no more to bother me!' it's better.
  1678  That's the way Joe Harper does, and he's been nearly to Coonville and
  1679  most everywheres. But say--how do you cure 'em with dead cats?"
  1680  
  1681  "Why, you take your cat and go and get in the graveyard 'long about
  1682  midnight when somebody that was wicked has been buried; and when it's
  1683  midnight a devil will come, or maybe two or three, but you can't see
  1684  'em, you can only hear something like the wind, or maybe hear 'em talk;
  1685  and when they're taking that feller away, you heave your cat after 'em
  1686  and say, 'Devil follow corpse, cat follow devil, warts follow cat, I'm
  1687  done with ye!' That'll fetch ANY wart."
  1688  
  1689  "Sounds right. D'you ever try it, Huck?"
  1690  
  1691  "No, but old Mother Hopkins told me."
  1692  
  1693  "Well, I reckon it's so, then. Becuz they say she's a witch."
  1694  
  1695  "Say! Why, Tom, I KNOW she is. She witched pap. Pap says so his own
  1696  self. He come along one day, and he see she was a-witching him, so he
  1697  took up a rock, and if she hadn't dodged, he'd a got her. Well, that
  1698  very night he rolled off'n a shed wher' he was a layin drunk, and broke
  1699  his arm."
  1700  
  1701  "Why, that's awful. How did he know she was a-witching him?"
  1702  
  1703  "Lord, pap can tell, easy. Pap says when they keep looking at you
  1704  right stiddy, they're a-witching you. Specially if they mumble. Becuz
  1705  when they mumble they're saying the Lord's Prayer backards."
  1706  
  1707  "Say, Hucky, when you going to try the cat?"
  1708  
  1709  "To-night. I reckon they'll come after old Hoss Williams to-night."
  1710  
  1711  "But they buried him Saturday. Didn't they get him Saturday night?"
  1712  
  1713  "Why, how you talk! How could their charms work till midnight?--and
  1714  THEN it's Sunday. Devils don't slosh around much of a Sunday, I don't
  1715  reckon."
  1716  
  1717  "I never thought of that. That's so. Lemme go with you?"
  1718  
  1719  "Of course--if you ain't afeard."
  1720  
  1721  "Afeard! 'Tain't likely. Will you meow?"
  1722  
  1723  "Yes--and you meow back, if you get a chance. Last time, you kep' me
  1724  a-meowing around till old Hays went to throwing rocks at me and says
  1725  'Dern that cat!' and so I hove a brick through his window--but don't
  1726  you tell."
  1727  
  1728  "I won't. I couldn't meow that night, becuz auntie was watching me,
  1729  but I'll meow this time. Say--what's that?"
  1730  
  1731  "Nothing but a tick."
  1732  
  1733  "Where'd you get him?"
  1734  
  1735  "Out in the woods."
  1736  
  1737  "What'll you take for him?"
  1738  
  1739  "I don't know. I don't want to sell him."
  1740  
  1741  "All right. It's a mighty small tick, anyway."
  1742  
  1743  "Oh, anybody can run a tick down that don't belong to them. I'm
  1744  satisfied with it. It's a good enough tick for me."
  1745  
  1746  "Sho, there's ticks a plenty. I could have a thousand of 'em if I
  1747  wanted to."
  1748  
  1749  "Well, why don't you? Becuz you know mighty well you can't. This is a
  1750  pretty early tick, I reckon. It's the first one I've seen this year."
  1751  
  1752  "Say, Huck--I'll give you my tooth for him."
  1753  
  1754  "Less see it."
  1755  
  1756  Tom got out a bit of paper and carefully unrolled it. Huckleberry
  1757  viewed it wistfully. The temptation was very strong. At last he said:
  1758  
  1759  "Is it genuwyne?"
  1760  
  1761  Tom lifted his lip and showed the vacancy.
  1762  
  1763  "Well, all right," said Huckleberry, "it's a trade."
  1764  
  1765  Tom enclosed the tick in the percussion-cap box that had lately been
  1766  the pinchbug's prison, and the boys separated, each feeling wealthier
  1767  than before.
  1768  
  1769  When Tom reached the little isolated frame schoolhouse, he strode in
  1770  briskly, with the manner of one who had come with all honest speed.
  1771  He hung his hat on a peg and flung himself into his seat with
  1772  business-like alacrity. The master, throned on high in his great
  1773  splint-bottom arm-chair, was dozing, lulled by the drowsy hum of study.
  1774  The interruption roused him.
  1775  
  1776  "Thomas Sawyer!"
  1777  
  1778  Tom knew that when his name was pronounced in full, it meant trouble.
  1779  
  1780  "Sir!"
  1781  
  1782  "Come up here. Now, sir, why are you late again, as usual?"
  1783  
  1784  Tom was about to take refuge in a lie, when he saw two long tails of
  1785  yellow hair hanging down a back that he recognized by the electric
  1786  sympathy of love; and by that form was THE ONLY VACANT PLACE on the
  1787  girls' side of the schoolhouse. He instantly said:
  1788  
  1789  "I STOPPED TO TALK WITH HUCKLEBERRY FINN!"
  1790  
  1791  The master's pulse stood still, and he stared helplessly. The buzz of
  1792  study ceased. The pupils wondered if this foolhardy boy had lost his
  1793  mind. The master said:
  1794  
  1795  "You--you did what?"
  1796  
  1797  "Stopped to talk with Huckleberry Finn."
  1798  
  1799  There was no mistaking the words.
  1800  
  1801  "Thomas Sawyer, this is the most astounding confession I have ever
  1802  listened to. No mere ferule will answer for this offence. Take off your
  1803  jacket."
  1804  
  1805  The master's arm performed until it was tired and the stock of
  1806  switches notably diminished. Then the order followed:
  1807  
  1808  "Now, sir, go and sit with the girls! And let this be a warning to you."
  1809  
  1810  The titter that rippled around the room appeared to abash the boy, but
  1811  in reality that result was caused rather more by his worshipful awe of
  1812  his unknown idol and the dread pleasure that lay in his high good
  1813  fortune. He sat down upon the end of the pine bench and the girl
  1814  hitched herself away from him with a toss of her head. Nudges and winks
  1815  and whispers traversed the room, but Tom sat still, with his arms upon
  1816  the long, low desk before him, and seemed to study his book.
  1817  
  1818  By and by attention ceased from him, and the accustomed school murmur
  1819  rose upon the dull air once more. Presently the boy began to steal
  1820  furtive glances at the girl. She observed it, "made a mouth" at him and
  1821  gave him the back of her head for the space of a minute. When she
  1822  cautiously faced around again, a peach lay before her. She thrust it
  1823  away. Tom gently put it back. She thrust it away again, but with less
  1824  animosity. Tom patiently returned it to its place. Then she let it
  1825  remain. Tom scrawled on his slate, "Please take it--I got more." The
  1826  girl glanced at the words, but made no sign. Now the boy began to draw
  1827  something on the slate, hiding his work with his left hand. For a time
  1828  the girl refused to notice; but her human curiosity presently began to
  1829  manifest itself by hardly perceptible signs. The boy worked on,
  1830  apparently unconscious. The girl made a sort of noncommittal attempt to
  1831  see, but the boy did not betray that he was aware of it. At last she
  1832  gave in and hesitatingly whispered:
  1833  
  1834  "Let me see it."
  1835  
  1836  Tom partly uncovered a dismal caricature of a house with two gable
  1837  ends to it and a corkscrew of smoke issuing from the chimney. Then the
  1838  girl's interest began to fasten itself upon the work and she forgot
  1839  everything else. When it was finished, she gazed a moment, then
  1840  whispered:
  1841  
  1842  "It's nice--make a man."
  1843  
  1844  The artist erected a man in the front yard, that resembled a derrick.
  1845  He could have stepped over the house; but the girl was not
  1846  hypercritical; she was satisfied with the monster, and whispered:
  1847  
  1848  "It's a beautiful man--now make me coming along."
  1849  
  1850  Tom drew an hour-glass with a full moon and straw limbs to it and
  1851  armed the spreading fingers with a portentous fan. The girl said:
  1852  
  1853  "It's ever so nice--I wish I could draw."
  1854  
  1855  "It's easy," whispered Tom, "I'll learn you."
  1856  
  1857  "Oh, will you? When?"
  1858  
  1859  "At noon. Do you go home to dinner?"
  1860  
  1861  "I'll stay if you will."
  1862  
  1863  "Good--that's a whack. What's your name?"
  1864  
  1865  "Becky Thatcher. What's yours? Oh, I know. It's Thomas Sawyer."
  1866  
  1867  "That's the name they lick me by. I'm Tom when I'm good. You call me
  1868  Tom, will you?"
  1869  
  1870  "Yes."
  1871  
  1872  Now Tom began to scrawl something on the slate, hiding the words from
  1873  the girl. But she was not backward this time. She begged to see. Tom
  1874  said:
  1875  
  1876  "Oh, it ain't anything."
  1877  
  1878  "Yes it is."
  1879  
  1880  "No it ain't. You don't want to see."
  1881  
  1882  "Yes I do, indeed I do. Please let me."
  1883  
  1884  "You'll tell."
  1885  
  1886  "No I won't--deed and deed and double deed won't."
  1887  
  1888  "You won't tell anybody at all? Ever, as long as you live?"
  1889  
  1890  "No, I won't ever tell ANYbody. Now let me."
  1891  
  1892  "Oh, YOU don't want to see!"
  1893  
  1894  "Now that you treat me so, I WILL see." And she put her small hand
  1895  upon his and a little scuffle ensued, Tom pretending to resist in
  1896  earnest but letting his hand slip by degrees till these words were
  1897  revealed: "I LOVE YOU."
  1898  
  1899  "Oh, you bad thing!" And she hit his hand a smart rap, but reddened
  1900  and looked pleased, nevertheless.
  1901  
  1902  Just at this juncture the boy felt a slow, fateful grip closing on his
  1903  ear, and a steady lifting impulse. In that wise he was borne across the
  1904  house and deposited in his own seat, under a peppering fire of giggles
  1905  from the whole school. Then the master stood over him during a few
  1906  awful moments, and finally moved away to his throne without saying a
  1907  word. But although Tom's ear tingled, his heart was jubilant.
  1908  
  1909  As the school quieted down Tom made an honest effort to study, but the
  1910  turmoil within him was too great. In turn he took his place in the
  1911  reading class and made a botch of it; then in the geography class and
  1912  turned lakes into mountains, mountains into rivers, and rivers into
  1913  continents, till chaos was come again; then in the spelling class, and
  1914  got "turned down," by a succession of mere baby words, till he brought
  1915  up at the foot and yielded up the pewter medal which he had worn with
  1916  ostentation for months.
  1917  
  1918  
  1919  
  1920  CHAPTER VII
  1921  
  1922  THE harder Tom tried to fasten his mind on his book, the more his
  1923  ideas wandered. So at last, with a sigh and a yawn, he gave it up. It
  1924  seemed to him that the noon recess would never come. The air was
  1925  utterly dead. There was not a breath stirring. It was the sleepiest of
  1926  sleepy days. The drowsing murmur of the five and twenty studying
  1927  scholars soothed the soul like the spell that is in the murmur of bees.
  1928  Away off in the flaming sunshine, Cardiff Hill lifted its soft green
  1929  sides through a shimmering veil of heat, tinted with the purple of
  1930  distance; a few birds floated on lazy wing high in the air; no other
  1931  living thing was visible but some cows, and they were asleep. Tom's
  1932  heart ached to be free, or else to have something of interest to do to
  1933  pass the dreary time. His hand wandered into his pocket and his face
  1934  lit up with a glow of gratitude that was prayer, though he did not know
  1935  it. Then furtively the percussion-cap box came out. He released the
  1936  tick and put him on the long flat desk. The creature probably glowed
  1937  with a gratitude that amounted to prayer, too, at this moment, but it
  1938  was premature: for when he started thankfully to travel off, Tom turned
  1939  him aside with a pin and made him take a new direction.
  1940  
  1941  Tom's bosom friend sat next him, suffering just as Tom had been, and
  1942  now he was deeply and gratefully interested in this entertainment in an
  1943  instant. This bosom friend was Joe Harper. The two boys were sworn
  1944  friends all the week, and embattled enemies on Saturdays. Joe took a
  1945  pin out of his lapel and began to assist in exercising the prisoner.
  1946  The sport grew in interest momently. Soon Tom said that they were
  1947  interfering with each other, and neither getting the fullest benefit of
  1948  the tick. So he put Joe's slate on the desk and drew a line down the
  1949  middle of it from top to bottom.
  1950  
  1951  "Now," said he, "as long as he is on your side you can stir him up and
  1952  I'll let him alone; but if you let him get away and get on my side,
  1953  you're to leave him alone as long as I can keep him from crossing over."
  1954  
  1955  "All right, go ahead; start him up."
  1956  
  1957  The tick escaped from Tom, presently, and crossed the equator. Joe
  1958  harassed him awhile, and then he got away and crossed back again. This
  1959  change of base occurred often. While one boy was worrying the tick with
  1960  absorbing interest, the other would look on with interest as strong,
  1961  the two heads bowed together over the slate, and the two souls dead to
  1962  all things else. At last luck seemed to settle and abide with Joe. The
  1963  tick tried this, that, and the other course, and got as excited and as
  1964  anxious as the boys themselves, but time and again just as he would
  1965  have victory in his very grasp, so to speak, and Tom's fingers would be
  1966  twitching to begin, Joe's pin would deftly head him off, and keep
  1967  possession. At last Tom could stand it no longer. The temptation was
  1968  too strong. So he reached out and lent a hand with his pin. Joe was
  1969  angry in a moment. Said he:
  1970  
  1971  "Tom, you let him alone."
  1972  
  1973  "I only just want to stir him up a little, Joe."
  1974  
  1975  "No, sir, it ain't fair; you just let him alone."
  1976  
  1977  "Blame it, I ain't going to stir him much."
  1978  
  1979  "Let him alone, I tell you."
  1980  
  1981  "I won't!"
  1982  
  1983  "You shall--he's on my side of the line."
  1984  
  1985  "Look here, Joe Harper, whose is that tick?"
  1986  
  1987  "I don't care whose tick he is--he's on my side of the line, and you
  1988  sha'n't touch him."
  1989  
  1990  "Well, I'll just bet I will, though. He's my tick and I'll do what I
  1991  blame please with him, or die!"
  1992  
  1993  A tremendous whack came down on Tom's shoulders, and its duplicate on
  1994  Joe's; and for the space of two minutes the dust continued to fly from
  1995  the two jackets and the whole school to enjoy it. The boys had been too
  1996  absorbed to notice the hush that had stolen upon the school awhile
  1997  before when the master came tiptoeing down the room and stood over
  1998  them. He had contemplated a good part of the performance before he
  1999  contributed his bit of variety to it.
  2000  
  2001  When school broke up at noon, Tom flew to Becky Thatcher, and
  2002  whispered in her ear:
  2003  
  2004  "Put on your bonnet and let on you're going home; and when you get to
  2005  the corner, give the rest of 'em the slip, and turn down through the
  2006  lane and come back. I'll go the other way and come it over 'em the same
  2007  way."
  2008  
  2009  So the one went off with one group of scholars, and the other with
  2010  another. In a little while the two met at the bottom of the lane, and
  2011  when they reached the school they had it all to themselves. Then they
  2012  sat together, with a slate before them, and Tom gave Becky the pencil
  2013  and held her hand in his, guiding it, and so created another surprising
  2014  house. When the interest in art began to wane, the two fell to talking.
  2015  Tom was swimming in bliss. He said:
  2016  
  2017  "Do you love rats?"
  2018  
  2019  "No! I hate them!"
  2020  
  2021  "Well, I do, too--LIVE ones. But I mean dead ones, to swing round your
  2022  head with a string."
  2023  
  2024  "No, I don't care for rats much, anyway. What I like is chewing-gum."
  2025  
  2026  "Oh, I should say so! I wish I had some now."
  2027  
  2028  "Do you? I've got some. I'll let you chew it awhile, but you must give
  2029  it back to me."
  2030  
  2031  That was agreeable, so they chewed it turn about, and dangled their
  2032  legs against the bench in excess of contentment.
  2033  
  2034  "Was you ever at a circus?" said Tom.
  2035  
  2036  "Yes, and my pa's going to take me again some time, if I'm good."
  2037  
  2038  "I been to the circus three or four times--lots of times. Church ain't
  2039  shucks to a circus. There's things going on at a circus all the time.
  2040  I'm going to be a clown in a circus when I grow up."
  2041  
  2042  "Oh, are you! That will be nice. They're so lovely, all spotted up."
  2043  
  2044  "Yes, that's so. And they get slathers of money--most a dollar a day,
  2045  Ben Rogers says. Say, Becky, was you ever engaged?"
  2046  
  2047  "What's that?"
  2048  
  2049  "Why, engaged to be married."
  2050  
  2051  "No."
  2052  
  2053  "Would you like to?"
  2054  
  2055  "I reckon so. I don't know. What is it like?"
  2056  
  2057  "Like? Why it ain't like anything. You only just tell a boy you won't
  2058  ever have anybody but him, ever ever ever, and then you kiss and that's
  2059  all. Anybody can do it."
  2060  
  2061  "Kiss? What do you kiss for?"
  2062  
  2063  "Why, that, you know, is to--well, they always do that."
  2064  
  2065  "Everybody?"
  2066  
  2067  "Why, yes, everybody that's in love with each other. Do you remember
  2068  what I wrote on the slate?"
  2069  
  2070  "Ye--yes."
  2071  
  2072  "What was it?"
  2073  
  2074  "I sha'n't tell you."
  2075  
  2076  "Shall I tell YOU?"
  2077  
  2078  "Ye--yes--but some other time."
  2079  
  2080  "No, now."
  2081  
  2082  "No, not now--to-morrow."
  2083  
  2084  "Oh, no, NOW. Please, Becky--I'll whisper it, I'll whisper it ever so
  2085  easy."
  2086  
  2087  Becky hesitating, Tom took silence for consent, and passed his arm
  2088  about her waist and whispered the tale ever so softly, with his mouth
  2089  close to her ear. And then he added:
  2090  
  2091  "Now you whisper it to me--just the same."
  2092  
  2093  She resisted, for a while, and then said:
  2094  
  2095  "You turn your face away so you can't see, and then I will. But you
  2096  mustn't ever tell anybody--WILL you, Tom? Now you won't, WILL you?"
  2097  
  2098  "No, indeed, indeed I won't. Now, Becky."
  2099  
  2100  He turned his face away. She bent timidly around till her breath
  2101  stirred his curls and whispered, "I--love--you!"
  2102  
  2103  Then she sprang away and ran around and around the desks and benches,
  2104  with Tom after her, and took refuge in a corner at last, with her
  2105  little white apron to her face. Tom clasped her about her neck and
  2106  pleaded:
  2107  
  2108  "Now, Becky, it's all done--all over but the kiss. Don't you be afraid
  2109  of that--it ain't anything at all. Please, Becky." And he tugged at her
  2110  apron and the hands.
  2111  
  2112  By and by she gave up, and let her hands drop; her face, all glowing
  2113  with the struggle, came up and submitted. Tom kissed the red lips and
  2114  said:
  2115  
  2116  "Now it's all done, Becky. And always after this, you know, you ain't
  2117  ever to love anybody but me, and you ain't ever to marry anybody but
  2118  me, ever never and forever. Will you?"
  2119  
  2120  "No, I'll never love anybody but you, Tom, and I'll never marry
  2121  anybody but you--and you ain't to ever marry anybody but me, either."
  2122  
  2123  "Certainly. Of course. That's PART of it. And always coming to school
  2124  or when we're going home, you're to walk with me, when there ain't
  2125  anybody looking--and you choose me and I choose you at parties, because
  2126  that's the way you do when you're engaged."
  2127  
  2128  "It's so nice. I never heard of it before."
  2129  
  2130  "Oh, it's ever so gay! Why, me and Amy Lawrence--"
  2131  
  2132  The big eyes told Tom his blunder and he stopped, confused.
  2133  
  2134  "Oh, Tom! Then I ain't the first you've ever been engaged to!"
  2135  
  2136  The child began to cry. Tom said:
  2137  
  2138  "Oh, don't cry, Becky, I don't care for her any more."
  2139  
  2140  "Yes, you do, Tom--you know you do."
  2141  
  2142  Tom tried to put his arm about her neck, but she pushed him away and
  2143  turned her face to the wall, and went on crying. Tom tried again, with
  2144  soothing words in his mouth, and was repulsed again. Then his pride was
  2145  up, and he strode away and went outside. He stood about, restless and
  2146  uneasy, for a while, glancing at the door, every now and then, hoping
  2147  she would repent and come to find him. But she did not. Then he began
  2148  to feel badly and fear that he was in the wrong. It was a hard struggle
  2149  with him to make new advances, now, but he nerved himself to it and
  2150  entered. She was still standing back there in the corner, sobbing, with
  2151  her face to the wall. Tom's heart smote him. He went to her and stood a
  2152  moment, not knowing exactly how to proceed. Then he said hesitatingly:
  2153  
  2154  "Becky, I--I don't care for anybody but you."
  2155  
  2156  No reply--but sobs.
  2157  
  2158  "Becky"--pleadingly. "Becky, won't you say something?"
  2159  
  2160  More sobs.
  2161  
  2162  Tom got out his chiefest jewel, a brass knob from the top of an
  2163  andiron, and passed it around her so that she could see it, and said:
  2164  
  2165  "Please, Becky, won't you take it?"
  2166  
  2167  She struck it to the floor. Then Tom marched out of the house and over
  2168  the hills and far away, to return to school no more that day. Presently
  2169  Becky began to suspect. She ran to the door; he was not in sight; she
  2170  flew around to the play-yard; he was not there. Then she called:
  2171  
  2172  "Tom! Come back, Tom!"
  2173  
  2174  She listened intently, but there was no answer. She had no companions
  2175  but silence and loneliness. So she sat down to cry again and upbraid
  2176  herself; and by this time the scholars began to gather again, and she
  2177  had to hide her griefs and still her broken heart and take up the cross
  2178  of a long, dreary, aching afternoon, with none among the strangers
  2179  about her to exchange sorrows with.
  2180  
  2181  
  2182  
  2183  CHAPTER VIII
  2184  
  2185  TOM dodged hither and thither through lanes until he was well out of
  2186  the track of returning scholars, and then fell into a moody jog. He
  2187  crossed a small "branch" two or three times, because of a prevailing
  2188  juvenile superstition that to cross water baffled pursuit. Half an hour
  2189  later he was disappearing behind the Douglas mansion on the summit of
  2190  Cardiff Hill, and the schoolhouse was hardly distinguishable away off
  2191  in the valley behind him. He entered a dense wood, picked his pathless
  2192  way to the centre of it, and sat down on a mossy spot under a spreading
  2193  oak. There was not even a zephyr stirring; the dead noonday heat had
  2194  even stilled the songs of the birds; nature lay in a trance that was
  2195  broken by no sound but the occasional far-off hammering of a
  2196  woodpecker, and this seemed to render the pervading silence and sense
  2197  of loneliness the more profound. The boy's soul was steeped in
  2198  melancholy; his feelings were in happy accord with his surroundings. He
  2199  sat long with his elbows on his knees and his chin in his hands,
  2200  meditating. It seemed to him that life was but a trouble, at best, and
  2201  he more than half envied Jimmy Hodges, so lately released; it must be
  2202  very peaceful, he thought, to lie and slumber and dream forever and
  2203  ever, with the wind whispering through the trees and caressing the
  2204  grass and the flowers over the grave, and nothing to bother and grieve
  2205  about, ever any more. If he only had a clean Sunday-school record he
  2206  could be willing to go, and be done with it all. Now as to this girl.
  2207  What had he done? Nothing. He had meant the best in the world, and been
  2208  treated like a dog--like a very dog. She would be sorry some day--maybe
  2209  when it was too late. Ah, if he could only die TEMPORARILY!
  2210  
  2211  But the elastic heart of youth cannot be compressed into one
  2212  constrained shape long at a time. Tom presently began to drift
  2213  insensibly back into the concerns of this life again. What if he turned
  2214  his back, now, and disappeared mysteriously? What if he went away--ever
  2215  so far away, into unknown countries beyond the seas--and never came
  2216  back any more! How would she feel then! The idea of being a clown
  2217  recurred to him now, only to fill him with disgust. For frivolity and
  2218  jokes and spotted tights were an offense, when they intruded themselves
  2219  upon a spirit that was exalted into the vague august realm of the
  2220  romantic. No, he would be a soldier, and return after long years, all
  2221  war-worn and illustrious. No--better still, he would join the Indians,
  2222  and hunt buffaloes and go on the warpath in the mountain ranges and the
  2223  trackless great plains of the Far West, and away in the future come
  2224  back a great chief, bristling with feathers, hideous with paint, and
  2225  prance into Sunday-school, some drowsy summer morning, with a
  2226  bloodcurdling war-whoop, and sear the eyeballs of all his companions
  2227  with unappeasable envy. But no, there was something gaudier even than
  2228  this. He would be a pirate! That was it! NOW his future lay plain
  2229  before him, and glowing with unimaginable splendor. How his name would
  2230  fill the world, and make people shudder! How gloriously he would go
  2231  plowing the dancing seas, in his long, low, black-hulled racer, the
  2232  Spirit of the Storm, with his grisly flag flying at the fore! And at
  2233  the zenith of his fame, how he would suddenly appear at the old village
  2234  and stalk into church, brown and weather-beaten, in his black velvet
  2235  doublet and trunks, his great jack-boots, his crimson sash, his belt
  2236  bristling with horse-pistols, his crime-rusted cutlass at his side, his
  2237  slouch hat with waving plumes, his black flag unfurled, with the skull
  2238  and crossbones on it, and hear with swelling ecstasy the whisperings,
  2239  "It's Tom Sawyer the Pirate!--the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main!"
  2240  
  2241  Yes, it was settled; his career was determined. He would run away from
  2242  home and enter upon it. He would start the very next morning. Therefore
  2243  he must now begin to get ready. He would collect his resources
  2244  together. He went to a rotten log near at hand and began to dig under
  2245  one end of it with his Barlow knife. He soon struck wood that sounded
  2246  hollow. He put his hand there and uttered this incantation impressively:
  2247  
  2248  "What hasn't come here, come! What's here, stay here!"
  2249  
  2250  Then he scraped away the dirt, and exposed a pine shingle. He took it
  2251  up and disclosed a shapely little treasure-house whose bottom and sides
  2252  were of shingles. In it lay a marble. Tom's astonishment was boundless!
  2253  He scratched his head with a perplexed air, and said:
  2254  
  2255  "Well, that beats anything!"
  2256  
  2257  Then he tossed the marble away pettishly, and stood cogitating. The
  2258  truth was, that a superstition of his had failed, here, which he and
  2259  all his comrades had always looked upon as infallible. If you buried a
  2260  marble with certain necessary incantations, and left it alone a
  2261  fortnight, and then opened the place with the incantation he had just
  2262  used, you would find that all the marbles you had ever lost had
  2263  gathered themselves together there, meantime, no matter how widely they
  2264  had been separated. But now, this thing had actually and unquestionably
  2265  failed. Tom's whole structure of faith was shaken to its foundations.
  2266  He had many a time heard of this thing succeeding but never of its
  2267  failing before. It did not occur to him that he had tried it several
  2268  times before, himself, but could never find the hiding-places
  2269  afterward. He puzzled over the matter some time, and finally decided
  2270  that some witch had interfered and broken the charm. He thought he
  2271  would satisfy himself on that point; so he searched around till he
  2272  found a small sandy spot with a little funnel-shaped depression in it.
  2273  He laid himself down and put his mouth close to this depression and
  2274  called--
  2275  
  2276  "Doodle-bug, doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know! Doodle-bug,
  2277  doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know!"
  2278  
  2279  The sand began to work, and presently a small black bug appeared for a
  2280  second and then darted under again in a fright.
  2281  
  2282  "He dasn't tell! So it WAS a witch that done it. I just knowed it."
  2283  
  2284  He well knew the futility of trying to contend against witches, so he
  2285  gave up discouraged. But it occurred to him that he might as well have
  2286  the marble he had just thrown away, and therefore he went and made a
  2287  patient search for it. But he could not find it. Now he went back to
  2288  his treasure-house and carefully placed himself just as he had been
  2289  standing when he tossed the marble away; then he took another marble
  2290  from his pocket and tossed it in the same way, saying:
  2291  
  2292  "Brother, go find your brother!"
  2293  
  2294  He watched where it stopped, and went there and looked. But it must
  2295  have fallen short or gone too far; so he tried twice more. The last
  2296  repetition was successful. The two marbles lay within a foot of each
  2297  other.
  2298  
  2299  Just here the blast of a toy tin trumpet came faintly down the green
  2300  aisles of the forest. Tom flung off his jacket and trousers, turned a
  2301  suspender into a belt, raked away some brush behind the rotten log,
  2302  disclosing a rude bow and arrow, a lath sword and a tin trumpet, and in
  2303  a moment had seized these things and bounded away, barelegged, with
  2304  fluttering shirt. He presently halted under a great elm, blew an
  2305  answering blast, and then began to tiptoe and look warily out, this way
  2306  and that. He said cautiously--to an imaginary company:
  2307  
  2308  "Hold, my merry men! Keep hid till I blow."
  2309  
  2310  Now appeared Joe Harper, as airily clad and elaborately armed as Tom.
  2311  Tom called:
  2312  
  2313  "Hold! Who comes here into Sherwood Forest without my pass?"
  2314  
  2315  "Guy of Guisborne wants no man's pass. Who art thou that--that--"
  2316  
  2317  "Dares to hold such language," said Tom, prompting--for they talked
  2318  "by the book," from memory.
  2319  
  2320  "Who art thou that dares to hold such language?"
  2321  
  2322  "I, indeed! I am Robin Hood, as thy caitiff carcase soon shall know."
  2323  
  2324  "Then art thou indeed that famous outlaw? Right gladly will I dispute
  2325  with thee the passes of the merry wood. Have at thee!"
  2326  
  2327  They took their lath swords, dumped their other traps on the ground,
  2328  struck a fencing attitude, foot to foot, and began a grave, careful
  2329  combat, "two up and two down." Presently Tom said:
  2330  
  2331  "Now, if you've got the hang, go it lively!"
  2332  
  2333  So they "went it lively," panting and perspiring with the work. By and
  2334  by Tom shouted:
  2335  
  2336  "Fall! fall! Why don't you fall?"
  2337  
  2338  "I sha'n't! Why don't you fall yourself? You're getting the worst of
  2339  it."
  2340  
  2341  "Why, that ain't anything. I can't fall; that ain't the way it is in
  2342  the book. The book says, 'Then with one back-handed stroke he slew poor
  2343  Guy of Guisborne.' You're to turn around and let me hit you in the
  2344  back."
  2345  
  2346  There was no getting around the authorities, so Joe turned, received
  2347  the whack and fell.
  2348  
  2349  "Now," said Joe, getting up, "you got to let me kill YOU. That's fair."
  2350  
  2351  "Why, I can't do that, it ain't in the book."
  2352  
  2353  "Well, it's blamed mean--that's all."
  2354  
  2355  "Well, say, Joe, you can be Friar Tuck or Much the miller's son, and
  2356  lam me with a quarter-staff; or I'll be the Sheriff of Nottingham and
  2357  you be Robin Hood a little while and kill me."
  2358  
  2359  This was satisfactory, and so these adventures were carried out. Then
  2360  Tom became Robin Hood again, and was allowed by the treacherous nun to
  2361  bleed his strength away through his neglected wound. And at last Joe,
  2362  representing a whole tribe of weeping outlaws, dragged him sadly forth,
  2363  gave his bow into his feeble hands, and Tom said, "Where this arrow
  2364  falls, there bury poor Robin Hood under the greenwood tree." Then he
  2365  shot the arrow and fell back and would have died, but he lit on a
  2366  nettle and sprang up too gaily for a corpse.
  2367  
  2368  The boys dressed themselves, hid their accoutrements, and went off
  2369  grieving that there were no outlaws any more, and wondering what modern
  2370  civilization could claim to have done to compensate for their loss.
  2371  They said they would rather be outlaws a year in Sherwood Forest than
  2372  President of the United States forever.
  2373  
  2374  
  2375  
  2376  CHAPTER IX
  2377  
  2378  AT half-past nine, that night, Tom and Sid were sent to bed, as usual.
  2379  They said their prayers, and Sid was soon asleep. Tom lay awake and
  2380  waited, in restless impatience. When it seemed to him that it must be
  2381  nearly daylight, he heard the clock strike ten! This was despair. He
  2382  would have tossed and fidgeted, as his nerves demanded, but he was
  2383  afraid he might wake Sid. So he lay still, and stared up into the dark.
  2384  Everything was dismally still. By and by, out of the stillness, little,
  2385  scarcely perceptible noises began to emphasize themselves. The ticking
  2386  of the clock began to bring itself into notice. Old beams began to
  2387  crack mysteriously. The stairs creaked faintly. Evidently spirits were
  2388  abroad. A measured, muffled snore issued from Aunt Polly's chamber. And
  2389  now the tiresome chirping of a cricket that no human ingenuity could
  2390  locate, began. Next the ghastly ticking of a deathwatch in the wall at
  2391  the bed's head made Tom shudder--it meant that somebody's days were
  2392  numbered. Then the howl of a far-off dog rose on the night air, and was
  2393  answered by a fainter howl from a remoter distance. Tom was in an
  2394  agony. At last he was satisfied that time had ceased and eternity
  2395  begun; he began to doze, in spite of himself; the clock chimed eleven,
  2396  but he did not hear it. And then there came, mingling with his
  2397  half-formed dreams, a most melancholy caterwauling. The raising of a
  2398  neighboring window disturbed him. A cry of "Scat! you devil!" and the
  2399  crash of an empty bottle against the back of his aunt's woodshed
  2400  brought him wide awake, and a single minute later he was dressed and
  2401  out of the window and creeping along the roof of the "ell" on all
  2402  fours. He "meow'd" with caution once or twice, as he went; then jumped
  2403  to the roof of the woodshed and thence to the ground. Huckleberry Finn
  2404  was there, with his dead cat. The boys moved off and disappeared in the
  2405  gloom. At the end of half an hour they were wading through the tall
  2406  grass of the graveyard.
  2407  
  2408  It was a graveyard of the old-fashioned Western kind. It was on a
  2409  hill, about a mile and a half from the village. It had a crazy board
  2410  fence around it, which leaned inward in places, and outward the rest of
  2411  the time, but stood upright nowhere. Grass and weeds grew rank over the
  2412  whole cemetery. All the old graves were sunken in, there was not a
  2413  tombstone on the place; round-topped, worm-eaten boards staggered over
  2414  the graves, leaning for support and finding none. "Sacred to the memory
  2415  of" So-and-So had been painted on them once, but it could no longer
  2416  have been read, on the most of them, now, even if there had been light.
  2417  
  2418  A faint wind moaned through the trees, and Tom feared it might be the
  2419  spirits of the dead, complaining at being disturbed. The boys talked
  2420  little, and only under their breath, for the time and the place and the
  2421  pervading solemnity and silence oppressed their spirits. They found the
  2422  sharp new heap they were seeking, and ensconced themselves within the
  2423  protection of three great elms that grew in a bunch within a few feet
  2424  of the grave.
  2425  
  2426  Then they waited in silence for what seemed a long time. The hooting
  2427  of a distant owl was all the sound that troubled the dead stillness.
  2428  Tom's reflections grew oppressive. He must force some talk. So he said
  2429  in a whisper:
  2430  
  2431  "Hucky, do you believe the dead people like it for us to be here?"
  2432  
  2433  Huckleberry whispered:
  2434  
  2435  "I wisht I knowed. It's awful solemn like, AIN'T it?"
  2436  
  2437  "I bet it is."
  2438  
  2439  There was a considerable pause, while the boys canvassed this matter
  2440  inwardly. Then Tom whispered:
  2441  
  2442  "Say, Hucky--do you reckon Hoss Williams hears us talking?"
  2443  
  2444  "O' course he does. Least his sperrit does."
  2445  
  2446  Tom, after a pause:
  2447  
  2448  "I wish I'd said Mister Williams. But I never meant any harm.
  2449  Everybody calls him Hoss."
  2450  
  2451  "A body can't be too partic'lar how they talk 'bout these-yer dead
  2452  people, Tom."
  2453  
  2454  This was a damper, and conversation died again.
  2455  
  2456  Presently Tom seized his comrade's arm and said:
  2457  
  2458  "Sh!"
  2459  
  2460  "What is it, Tom?" And the two clung together with beating hearts.
  2461  
  2462  "Sh! There 'tis again! Didn't you hear it?"
  2463  
  2464  "I--"
  2465  
  2466  "There! Now you hear it."
  2467  
  2468  "Lord, Tom, they're coming! They're coming, sure. What'll we do?"
  2469  
  2470  "I dono. Think they'll see us?"
  2471  
  2472  "Oh, Tom, they can see in the dark, same as cats. I wisht I hadn't
  2473  come."
  2474  
  2475  "Oh, don't be afeard. I don't believe they'll bother us. We ain't
  2476  doing any harm. If we keep perfectly still, maybe they won't notice us
  2477  at all."
  2478  
  2479  "I'll try to, Tom, but, Lord, I'm all of a shiver."
  2480  
  2481  "Listen!"
  2482  
  2483  The boys bent their heads together and scarcely breathed. A muffled
  2484  sound of voices floated up from the far end of the graveyard.
  2485  
  2486  "Look! See there!" whispered Tom. "What is it?"
  2487  
  2488  "It's devil-fire. Oh, Tom, this is awful."
  2489  
  2490  Some vague figures approached through the gloom, swinging an
  2491  old-fashioned tin lantern that freckled the ground with innumerable
  2492  little spangles of light. Presently Huckleberry whispered with a
  2493  shudder:
  2494  
  2495  "It's the devils sure enough. Three of 'em! Lordy, Tom, we're goners!
  2496  Can you pray?"
  2497  
  2498  "I'll try, but don't you be afeard. They ain't going to hurt us. 'Now
  2499  I lay me down to sleep, I--'"
  2500  
  2501  "Sh!"
  2502  
  2503  "What is it, Huck?"
  2504  
  2505  "They're HUMANS! One of 'em is, anyway. One of 'em's old Muff Potter's
  2506  voice."
  2507  
  2508  "No--'tain't so, is it?"
  2509  
  2510  "I bet I know it. Don't you stir nor budge. He ain't sharp enough to
  2511  notice us. Drunk, the same as usual, likely--blamed old rip!"
  2512  
  2513  "All right, I'll keep still. Now they're stuck. Can't find it. Here
  2514  they come again. Now they're hot. Cold again. Hot again. Red hot!
  2515  They're p'inted right, this time. Say, Huck, I know another o' them
  2516  voices; it's Injun Joe."
  2517  
  2518  "That's so--that murderin' half-breed! I'd druther they was devils a
  2519  dern sight. What kin they be up to?"
  2520  
  2521  The whisper died wholly out, now, for the three men had reached the
  2522  grave and stood within a few feet of the boys' hiding-place.
  2523  
  2524  "Here it is," said the third voice; and the owner of it held the
  2525  lantern up and revealed the face of young Doctor Robinson.
  2526  
  2527  Potter and Injun Joe were carrying a handbarrow with a rope and a
  2528  couple of shovels on it. They cast down their load and began to open
  2529  the grave. The doctor put the lantern at the head of the grave and came
  2530  and sat down with his back against one of the elm trees. He was so
  2531  close the boys could have touched him.
  2532  
  2533  "Hurry, men!" he said, in a low voice; "the moon might come out at any
  2534  moment."
  2535  
  2536  They growled a response and went on digging. For some time there was
  2537  no noise but the grating sound of the spades discharging their freight
  2538  of mould and gravel. It was very monotonous. Finally a spade struck
  2539  upon the coffin with a dull woody accent, and within another minute or
  2540  two the men had hoisted it out on the ground. They pried off the lid
  2541  with their shovels, got out the body and dumped it rudely on the
  2542  ground. The moon drifted from behind the clouds and exposed the pallid
  2543  face. The barrow was got ready and the corpse placed on it, covered
  2544  with a blanket, and bound to its place with the rope. Potter took out a
  2545  large spring-knife and cut off the dangling end of the rope and then
  2546  said:
  2547  
  2548  "Now the cussed thing's ready, Sawbones, and you'll just out with
  2549  another five, or here she stays."
  2550  
  2551  "That's the talk!" said Injun Joe.
  2552  
  2553  "Look here, what does this mean?" said the doctor. "You required your
  2554  pay in advance, and I've paid you."
  2555  
  2556  "Yes, and you done more than that," said Injun Joe, approaching the
  2557  doctor, who was now standing. "Five years ago you drove me away from
  2558  your father's kitchen one night, when I come to ask for something to
  2559  eat, and you said I warn't there for any good; and when I swore I'd get
  2560  even with you if it took a hundred years, your father had me jailed for
  2561  a vagrant. Did you think I'd forget? The Injun blood ain't in me for
  2562  nothing. And now I've GOT you, and you got to SETTLE, you know!"
  2563  
  2564  He was threatening the doctor, with his fist in his face, by this
  2565  time. The doctor struck out suddenly and stretched the ruffian on the
  2566  ground. Potter dropped his knife, and exclaimed:
  2567  
  2568  "Here, now, don't you hit my pard!" and the next moment he had
  2569  grappled with the doctor and the two were struggling with might and
  2570  main, trampling the grass and tearing the ground with their heels.
  2571  Injun Joe sprang to his feet, his eyes flaming with passion, snatched
  2572  up Potter's knife, and went creeping, catlike and stooping, round and
  2573  round about the combatants, seeking an opportunity. All at once the
  2574  doctor flung himself free, seized the heavy headboard of Williams'
  2575  grave and felled Potter to the earth with it--and in the same instant
  2576  the half-breed saw his chance and drove the knife to the hilt in the
  2577  young man's breast. He reeled and fell partly upon Potter, flooding him
  2578  with his blood, and in the same moment the clouds blotted out the
  2579  dreadful spectacle and the two frightened boys went speeding away in
  2580  the dark.
  2581  
  2582  Presently, when the moon emerged again, Injun Joe was standing over
  2583  the two forms, contemplating them. The doctor murmured inarticulately,
  2584  gave a long gasp or two and was still. The half-breed muttered:
  2585  
  2586  "THAT score is settled--damn you."
  2587  
  2588  Then he robbed the body. After which he put the fatal knife in
  2589  Potter's open right hand, and sat down on the dismantled coffin. Three
  2590  --four--five minutes passed, and then Potter began to stir and moan. His
  2591  hand closed upon the knife; he raised it, glanced at it, and let it
  2592  fall, with a shudder. Then he sat up, pushing the body from him, and
  2593  gazed at it, and then around him, confusedly. His eyes met Joe's.
  2594  
  2595  "Lord, how is this, Joe?" he said.
  2596  
  2597  "It's a dirty business," said Joe, without moving.
  2598  
  2599  "What did you do it for?"
  2600  
  2601  "I! I never done it!"
  2602  
  2603  "Look here! That kind of talk won't wash."
  2604  
  2605  Potter trembled and grew white.
  2606  
  2607  "I thought I'd got sober. I'd no business to drink to-night. But it's
  2608  in my head yet--worse'n when we started here. I'm all in a muddle;
  2609  can't recollect anything of it, hardly. Tell me, Joe--HONEST, now, old
  2610  feller--did I do it? Joe, I never meant to--'pon my soul and honor, I
  2611  never meant to, Joe. Tell me how it was, Joe. Oh, it's awful--and him
  2612  so young and promising."
  2613  
  2614  "Why, you two was scuffling, and he fetched you one with the headboard
  2615  and you fell flat; and then up you come, all reeling and staggering
  2616  like, and snatched the knife and jammed it into him, just as he fetched
  2617  you another awful clip--and here you've laid, as dead as a wedge til
  2618  now."
  2619  
  2620  "Oh, I didn't know what I was a-doing. I wish I may die this minute if
  2621  I did. It was all on account of the whiskey and the excitement, I
  2622  reckon. I never used a weepon in my life before, Joe. I've fought, but
  2623  never with weepons. They'll all say that. Joe, don't tell! Say you
  2624  won't tell, Joe--that's a good feller. I always liked you, Joe, and
  2625  stood up for you, too. Don't you remember? You WON'T tell, WILL you,
  2626  Joe?" And the poor creature dropped on his knees before the stolid
  2627  murderer, and clasped his appealing hands.
  2628  
  2629  "No, you've always been fair and square with me, Muff Potter, and I
  2630  won't go back on you. There, now, that's as fair as a man can say."
  2631  
  2632  "Oh, Joe, you're an angel. I'll bless you for this the longest day I
  2633  live." And Potter began to cry.
  2634  
  2635  "Come, now, that's enough of that. This ain't any time for blubbering.
  2636  You be off yonder way and I'll go this. Move, now, and don't leave any
  2637  tracks behind you."
  2638  
  2639  Potter started on a trot that quickly increased to a run. The
  2640  half-breed stood looking after him. He muttered:
  2641  
  2642  "If he's as much stunned with the lick and fuddled with the rum as he
  2643  had the look of being, he won't think of the knife till he's gone so
  2644  far he'll be afraid to come back after it to such a place by himself
  2645  --chicken-heart!"
  2646  
  2647  Two or three minutes later the murdered man, the blanketed corpse, the
  2648  lidless coffin, and the open grave were under no inspection but the
  2649  moon's. The stillness was complete again, too.
  2650  
  2651  
  2652  
  2653  CHAPTER X
  2654  
  2655  THE two boys flew on and on, toward the village, speechless with
  2656  horror. They glanced backward over their shoulders from time to time,
  2657  apprehensively, as if they feared they might be followed. Every stump
  2658  that started up in their path seemed a man and an enemy, and made them
  2659  catch their breath; and as they sped by some outlying cottages that lay
  2660  near the village, the barking of the aroused watch-dogs seemed to give
  2661  wings to their feet.
  2662  
  2663  "If we can only get to the old tannery before we break down!"
  2664  whispered Tom, in short catches between breaths. "I can't stand it much
  2665  longer."
  2666  
  2667  Huckleberry's hard pantings were his only reply, and the boys fixed
  2668  their eyes on the goal of their hopes and bent to their work to win it.
  2669  They gained steadily on it, and at last, breast to breast, they burst
  2670  through the open door and fell grateful and exhausted in the sheltering
  2671  shadows beyond. By and by their pulses slowed down, and Tom whispered:
  2672  
  2673  "Huckleberry, what do you reckon'll come of this?"
  2674  
  2675  "If Doctor Robinson dies, I reckon hanging'll come of it."
  2676  
  2677  "Do you though?"
  2678  
  2679  "Why, I KNOW it, Tom."
  2680  
  2681  Tom thought a while, then he said:
  2682  
  2683  "Who'll tell? We?"
  2684  
  2685  "What are you talking about? S'pose something happened and Injun Joe
  2686  DIDN'T hang? Why, he'd kill us some time or other, just as dead sure as
  2687  we're a laying here."
  2688  
  2689  "That's just what I was thinking to myself, Huck."
  2690  
  2691  "If anybody tells, let Muff Potter do it, if he's fool enough. He's
  2692  generally drunk enough."
  2693  
  2694  Tom said nothing--went on thinking. Presently he whispered:
  2695  
  2696  "Huck, Muff Potter don't know it. How can he tell?"
  2697  
  2698  "What's the reason he don't know it?"
  2699  
  2700  "Because he'd just got that whack when Injun Joe done it. D'you reckon
  2701  he could see anything? D'you reckon he knowed anything?"
  2702  
  2703  "By hokey, that's so, Tom!"
  2704  
  2705  "And besides, look-a-here--maybe that whack done for HIM!"
  2706  
  2707  "No, 'taint likely, Tom. He had liquor in him; I could see that; and
  2708  besides, he always has. Well, when pap's full, you might take and belt
  2709  him over the head with a church and you couldn't phase him. He says so,
  2710  his own self. So it's the same with Muff Potter, of course. But if a
  2711  man was dead sober, I reckon maybe that whack might fetch him; I dono."
  2712  
  2713  After another reflective silence, Tom said:
  2714  
  2715  "Hucky, you sure you can keep mum?"
  2716  
  2717  "Tom, we GOT to keep mum. You know that. That Injun devil wouldn't
  2718  make any more of drownding us than a couple of cats, if we was to
  2719  squeak 'bout this and they didn't hang him. Now, look-a-here, Tom, less
  2720  take and swear to one another--that's what we got to do--swear to keep
  2721  mum."
  2722  
  2723  "I'm agreed. It's the best thing. Would you just hold hands and swear
  2724  that we--"
  2725  
  2726  "Oh no, that wouldn't do for this. That's good enough for little
  2727  rubbishy common things--specially with gals, cuz THEY go back on you
  2728  anyway, and blab if they get in a huff--but there orter be writing
  2729  'bout a big thing like this. And blood."
  2730  
  2731  Tom's whole being applauded this idea. It was deep, and dark, and
  2732  awful; the hour, the circumstances, the surroundings, were in keeping
  2733  with it. He picked up a clean pine shingle that lay in the moonlight,
  2734  took a little fragment of "red keel" out of his pocket, got the moon on
  2735  his work, and painfully scrawled these lines, emphasizing each slow
  2736  down-stroke by clamping his tongue between his teeth, and letting up
  2737  the pressure on the up-strokes. [See next page.]
  2738  
  2739     "Huck Finn and
  2740      Tom Sawyer swears
  2741      they will keep mum
  2742      about This and They
  2743      wish They may Drop
  2744      down dead in Their
  2745      Tracks if They ever
  2746      Tell and Rot."
  2747  
  2748  Huckleberry was filled with admiration of Tom's facility in writing,
  2749  and the sublimity of his language. He at once took a pin from his lapel
  2750  and was going to prick his flesh, but Tom said:
  2751  
  2752  "Hold on! Don't do that. A pin's brass. It might have verdigrease on
  2753  it."
  2754  
  2755  "What's verdigrease?"
  2756  
  2757  "It's p'ison. That's what it is. You just swaller some of it once
  2758  --you'll see."
  2759  
  2760  So Tom unwound the thread from one of his needles, and each boy
  2761  pricked the ball of his thumb and squeezed out a drop of blood. In
  2762  time, after many squeezes, Tom managed to sign his initials, using the
  2763  ball of his little finger for a pen. Then he showed Huckleberry how to
  2764  make an H and an F, and the oath was complete. They buried the shingle
  2765  close to the wall, with some dismal ceremonies and incantations, and
  2766  the fetters that bound their tongues were considered to be locked and
  2767  the key thrown away.
  2768  
  2769  A figure crept stealthily through a break in the other end of the
  2770  ruined building, now, but they did not notice it.
  2771  
  2772  "Tom," whispered Huckleberry, "does this keep us from EVER telling
  2773  --ALWAYS?"
  2774  
  2775  "Of course it does. It don't make any difference WHAT happens, we got
  2776  to keep mum. We'd drop down dead--don't YOU know that?"
  2777  
  2778  "Yes, I reckon that's so."
  2779  
  2780  They continued to whisper for some little time. Presently a dog set up
  2781  a long, lugubrious howl just outside--within ten feet of them. The boys
  2782  clasped each other suddenly, in an agony of fright.
  2783  
  2784  "Which of us does he mean?" gasped Huckleberry.
  2785  
  2786  "I dono--peep through the crack. Quick!"
  2787  
  2788  "No, YOU, Tom!"
  2789  
  2790  "I can't--I can't DO it, Huck!"
  2791  
  2792  "Please, Tom. There 'tis again!"
  2793  
  2794  "Oh, lordy, I'm thankful!" whispered Tom. "I know his voice. It's Bull
  2795  Harbison." *
  2796  
  2797  [* If Mr. Harbison owned a slave named Bull, Tom would have spoken of
  2798  him as "Harbison's Bull," but a son or a dog of that name was "Bull
  2799  Harbison."]
  2800  
  2801  "Oh, that's good--I tell you, Tom, I was most scared to death; I'd a
  2802  bet anything it was a STRAY dog."
  2803  
  2804  The dog howled again. The boys' hearts sank once more.
  2805  
  2806  "Oh, my! that ain't no Bull Harbison!" whispered Huckleberry. "DO, Tom!"
  2807  
  2808  Tom, quaking with fear, yielded, and put his eye to the crack. His
  2809  whisper was hardly audible when he said:
  2810  
  2811  "Oh, Huck, IT S A STRAY DOG!"
  2812  
  2813  "Quick, Tom, quick! Who does he mean?"
  2814  
  2815  "Huck, he must mean us both--we're right together."
  2816  
  2817  "Oh, Tom, I reckon we're goners. I reckon there ain't no mistake 'bout
  2818  where I'LL go to. I been so wicked."
  2819  
  2820  "Dad fetch it! This comes of playing hookey and doing everything a
  2821  feller's told NOT to do. I might a been good, like Sid, if I'd a tried
  2822  --but no, I wouldn't, of course. But if ever I get off this time, I lay
  2823  I'll just WALLER in Sunday-schools!" And Tom began to snuffle a little.
  2824  
  2825  "YOU bad!" and Huckleberry began to snuffle too. "Consound it, Tom
  2826  Sawyer, you're just old pie, 'longside o' what I am. Oh, LORDY, lordy,
  2827  lordy, I wisht I only had half your chance."
  2828  
  2829  Tom choked off and whispered:
  2830  
  2831  "Look, Hucky, look! He's got his BACK to us!"
  2832  
  2833  Hucky looked, with joy in his heart.
  2834  
  2835  "Well, he has, by jingoes! Did he before?"
  2836  
  2837  "Yes, he did. But I, like a fool, never thought. Oh, this is bully,
  2838  you know. NOW who can he mean?"
  2839  
  2840  The howling stopped. Tom pricked up his ears.
  2841  
  2842  "Sh! What's that?" he whispered.
  2843  
  2844  "Sounds like--like hogs grunting. No--it's somebody snoring, Tom."
  2845  
  2846  "That IS it! Where 'bouts is it, Huck?"
  2847  
  2848  "I bleeve it's down at 'tother end. Sounds so, anyway. Pap used to
  2849  sleep there, sometimes, 'long with the hogs, but laws bless you, he
  2850  just lifts things when HE snores. Besides, I reckon he ain't ever
  2851  coming back to this town any more."
  2852  
  2853  The spirit of adventure rose in the boys' souls once more.
  2854  
  2855  "Hucky, do you das't to go if I lead?"
  2856  
  2857  "I don't like to, much. Tom, s'pose it's Injun Joe!"
  2858  
  2859  Tom quailed. But presently the temptation rose up strong again and the
  2860  boys agreed to try, with the understanding that they would take to
  2861  their heels if the snoring stopped. So they went tiptoeing stealthily
  2862  down, the one behind the other. When they had got to within five steps
  2863  of the snorer, Tom stepped on a stick, and it broke with a sharp snap.
  2864  The man moaned, writhed a little, and his face came into the moonlight.
  2865  It was Muff Potter. The boys' hearts had stood still, and their hopes
  2866  too, when the man moved, but their fears passed away now. They tiptoed
  2867  out, through the broken weather-boarding, and stopped at a little
  2868  distance to exchange a parting word. That long, lugubrious howl rose on
  2869  the night air again! They turned and saw the strange dog standing
  2870  within a few feet of where Potter was lying, and FACING Potter, with
  2871  his nose pointing heavenward.
  2872  
  2873  "Oh, geeminy, it's HIM!" exclaimed both boys, in a breath.
  2874  
  2875  "Say, Tom--they say a stray dog come howling around Johnny Miller's
  2876  house, 'bout midnight, as much as two weeks ago; and a whippoorwill
  2877  come in and lit on the banisters and sung, the very same evening; and
  2878  there ain't anybody dead there yet."
  2879  
  2880  "Well, I know that. And suppose there ain't. Didn't Gracie Miller fall
  2881  in the kitchen fire and burn herself terrible the very next Saturday?"
  2882  
  2883  "Yes, but she ain't DEAD. And what's more, she's getting better, too."
  2884  
  2885  "All right, you wait and see. She's a goner, just as dead sure as Muff
  2886  Potter's a goner. That's what the niggers say, and they know all about
  2887  these kind of things, Huck."
  2888  
  2889  Then they separated, cogitating. When Tom crept in at his bedroom
  2890  window the night was almost spent. He undressed with excessive caution,
  2891  and fell asleep congratulating himself that nobody knew of his
  2892  escapade. He was not aware that the gently-snoring Sid was awake, and
  2893  had been so for an hour.
  2894  
  2895  When Tom awoke, Sid was dressed and gone. There was a late look in the
  2896  light, a late sense in the atmosphere. He was startled. Why had he not
  2897  been called--persecuted till he was up, as usual? The thought filled
  2898  him with bodings. Within five minutes he was dressed and down-stairs,
  2899  feeling sore and drowsy. The family were still at table, but they had
  2900  finished breakfast. There was no voice of rebuke; but there were
  2901  averted eyes; there was a silence and an air of solemnity that struck a
  2902  chill to the culprit's heart. He sat down and tried to seem gay, but it
  2903  was up-hill work; it roused no smile, no response, and he lapsed into
  2904  silence and let his heart sink down to the depths.
  2905  
  2906  After breakfast his aunt took him aside, and Tom almost brightened in
  2907  the hope that he was going to be flogged; but it was not so. His aunt
  2908  wept over him and asked him how he could go and break her old heart so;
  2909  and finally told him to go on, and ruin himself and bring her gray
  2910  hairs with sorrow to the grave, for it was no use for her to try any
  2911  more. This was worse than a thousand whippings, and Tom's heart was
  2912  sorer now than his body. He cried, he pleaded for forgiveness, promised
  2913  to reform over and over again, and then received his dismissal, feeling
  2914  that he had won but an imperfect forgiveness and established but a
  2915  feeble confidence.
  2916  
  2917  He left the presence too miserable to even feel revengeful toward Sid;
  2918  and so the latter's prompt retreat through the back gate was
  2919  unnecessary. He moped to school gloomy and sad, and took his flogging,
  2920  along with Joe Harper, for playing hookey the day before, with the air
  2921  of one whose heart was busy with heavier woes and wholly dead to
  2922  trifles. Then he betook himself to his seat, rested his elbows on his
  2923  desk and his jaws in his hands, and stared at the wall with the stony
  2924  stare of suffering that has reached the limit and can no further go.
  2925  His elbow was pressing against some hard substance. After a long time
  2926  he slowly and sadly changed his position, and took up this object with
  2927  a sigh. It was in a paper. He unrolled it. A long, lingering, colossal
  2928  sigh followed, and his heart broke. It was his brass andiron knob!
  2929  
  2930  This final feather broke the camel's back.
  2931  
  2932  
  2933  
  2934  CHAPTER XI
  2935  
  2936  CLOSE upon the hour of noon the whole village was suddenly electrified
  2937  with the ghastly news. No need of the as yet undreamed-of telegraph;
  2938  the tale flew from man to man, from group to group, from house to
  2939  house, with little less than telegraphic speed. Of course the
  2940  schoolmaster gave holiday for that afternoon; the town would have
  2941  thought strangely of him if he had not.
  2942  
  2943  A gory knife had been found close to the murdered man, and it had been
  2944  recognized by somebody as belonging to Muff Potter--so the story ran.
  2945  And it was said that a belated citizen had come upon Potter washing
  2946  himself in the "branch" about one or two o'clock in the morning, and
  2947  that Potter had at once sneaked off--suspicious circumstances,
  2948  especially the washing which was not a habit with Potter. It was also
  2949  said that the town had been ransacked for this "murderer" (the public
  2950  are not slow in the matter of sifting evidence and arriving at a
  2951  verdict), but that he could not be found. Horsemen had departed down
  2952  all the roads in every direction, and the Sheriff "was confident" that
  2953  he would be captured before night.
  2954  
  2955  All the town was drifting toward the graveyard. Tom's heartbreak
  2956  vanished and he joined the procession, not because he would not a
  2957  thousand times rather go anywhere else, but because an awful,
  2958  unaccountable fascination drew him on. Arrived at the dreadful place,
  2959  he wormed his small body through the crowd and saw the dismal
  2960  spectacle. It seemed to him an age since he was there before. Somebody
  2961  pinched his arm. He turned, and his eyes met Huckleberry's. Then both
  2962  looked elsewhere at once, and wondered if anybody had noticed anything
  2963  in their mutual glance. But everybody was talking, and intent upon the
  2964  grisly spectacle before them.
  2965  
  2966  "Poor fellow!" "Poor young fellow!" "This ought to be a lesson to
  2967  grave robbers!" "Muff Potter'll hang for this if they catch him!" This
  2968  was the drift of remark; and the minister said, "It was a judgment; His
  2969  hand is here."
  2970  
  2971  Now Tom shivered from head to heel; for his eye fell upon the stolid
  2972  face of Injun Joe. At this moment the crowd began to sway and struggle,
  2973  and voices shouted, "It's him! it's him! he's coming himself!"
  2974  
  2975  "Who? Who?" from twenty voices.
  2976  
  2977  "Muff Potter!"
  2978  
  2979  "Hallo, he's stopped!--Look out, he's turning! Don't let him get away!"
  2980  
  2981  People in the branches of the trees over Tom's head said he wasn't
  2982  trying to get away--he only looked doubtful and perplexed.
  2983  
  2984  "Infernal impudence!" said a bystander; "wanted to come and take a
  2985  quiet look at his work, I reckon--didn't expect any company."
  2986  
  2987  The crowd fell apart, now, and the Sheriff came through,
  2988  ostentatiously leading Potter by the arm. The poor fellow's face was
  2989  haggard, and his eyes showed the fear that was upon him. When he stood
  2990  before the murdered man, he shook as with a palsy, and he put his face
  2991  in his hands and burst into tears.
  2992  
  2993  "I didn't do it, friends," he sobbed; "'pon my word and honor I never
  2994  done it."
  2995  
  2996  "Who's accused you?" shouted a voice.
  2997  
  2998  This shot seemed to carry home. Potter lifted his face and looked
  2999  around him with a pathetic hopelessness in his eyes. He saw Injun Joe,
  3000  and exclaimed:
  3001  
  3002  "Oh, Injun Joe, you promised me you'd never--"
  3003  
  3004  "Is that your knife?" and it was thrust before him by the Sheriff.
  3005  
  3006  Potter would have fallen if they had not caught him and eased him to
  3007  the ground. Then he said:
  3008  
  3009  "Something told me 't if I didn't come back and get--" He shuddered;
  3010  then waved his nerveless hand with a vanquished gesture and said, "Tell
  3011  'em, Joe, tell 'em--it ain't any use any more."
  3012  
  3013  Then Huckleberry and Tom stood dumb and staring, and heard the
  3014  stony-hearted liar reel off his serene statement, they expecting every
  3015  moment that the clear sky would deliver God's lightnings upon his head,
  3016  and wondering to see how long the stroke was delayed. And when he had
  3017  finished and still stood alive and whole, their wavering impulse to
  3018  break their oath and save the poor betrayed prisoner's life faded and
  3019  vanished away, for plainly this miscreant had sold himself to Satan and
  3020  it would be fatal to meddle with the property of such a power as that.
  3021  
  3022  "Why didn't you leave? What did you want to come here for?" somebody
  3023  said.
  3024  
  3025  "I couldn't help it--I couldn't help it," Potter moaned. "I wanted to
  3026  run away, but I couldn't seem to come anywhere but here." And he fell
  3027  to sobbing again.
  3028  
  3029  Injun Joe repeated his statement, just as calmly, a few minutes
  3030  afterward on the inquest, under oath; and the boys, seeing that the
  3031  lightnings were still withheld, were confirmed in their belief that Joe
  3032  had sold himself to the devil. He was now become, to them, the most
  3033  balefully interesting object they had ever looked upon, and they could
  3034  not take their fascinated eyes from his face.
  3035  
  3036  They inwardly resolved to watch him nights, when opportunity should
  3037  offer, in the hope of getting a glimpse of his dread master.
  3038  
  3039  Injun Joe helped to raise the body of the murdered man and put it in a
  3040  wagon for removal; and it was whispered through the shuddering crowd
  3041  that the wound bled a little! The boys thought that this happy
  3042  circumstance would turn suspicion in the right direction; but they were
  3043  disappointed, for more than one villager remarked:
  3044  
  3045  "It was within three feet of Muff Potter when it done it."
  3046  
  3047  Tom's fearful secret and gnawing conscience disturbed his sleep for as
  3048  much as a week after this; and at breakfast one morning Sid said:
  3049  
  3050  "Tom, you pitch around and talk in your sleep so much that you keep me
  3051  awake half the time."
  3052  
  3053  Tom blanched and dropped his eyes.
  3054  
  3055  "It's a bad sign," said Aunt Polly, gravely. "What you got on your
  3056  mind, Tom?"
  3057  
  3058  "Nothing. Nothing 't I know of." But the boy's hand shook so that he
  3059  spilled his coffee.
  3060  
  3061  "And you do talk such stuff," Sid said. "Last night you said, 'It's
  3062  blood, it's blood, that's what it is!' You said that over and over. And
  3063  you said, 'Don't torment me so--I'll tell!' Tell WHAT? What is it
  3064  you'll tell?"
  3065  
  3066  Everything was swimming before Tom. There is no telling what might
  3067  have happened, now, but luckily the concern passed out of Aunt Polly's
  3068  face and she came to Tom's relief without knowing it. She said:
  3069  
  3070  "Sho! It's that dreadful murder. I dream about it most every night
  3071  myself. Sometimes I dream it's me that done it."
  3072  
  3073  Mary said she had been affected much the same way. Sid seemed
  3074  satisfied. Tom got out of the presence as quick as he plausibly could,
  3075  and after that he complained of toothache for a week, and tied up his
  3076  jaws every night. He never knew that Sid lay nightly watching, and
  3077  frequently slipped the bandage free and then leaned on his elbow
  3078  listening a good while at a time, and afterward slipped the bandage
  3079  back to its place again. Tom's distress of mind wore off gradually and
  3080  the toothache grew irksome and was discarded. If Sid really managed to
  3081  make anything out of Tom's disjointed mutterings, he kept it to himself.
  3082  
  3083  It seemed to Tom that his schoolmates never would get done holding
  3084  inquests on dead cats, and thus keeping his trouble present to his
  3085  mind. Sid noticed that Tom never was coroner at one of these inquiries,
  3086  though it had been his habit to take the lead in all new enterprises;
  3087  he noticed, too, that Tom never acted as a witness--and that was
  3088  strange; and Sid did not overlook the fact that Tom even showed a
  3089  marked aversion to these inquests, and always avoided them when he
  3090  could. Sid marvelled, but said nothing. However, even inquests went out
  3091  of vogue at last, and ceased to torture Tom's conscience.
  3092  
  3093  Every day or two, during this time of sorrow, Tom watched his
  3094  opportunity and went to the little grated jail-window and smuggled such
  3095  small comforts through to the "murderer" as he could get hold of. The
  3096  jail was a trifling little brick den that stood in a marsh at the edge
  3097  of the village, and no guards were afforded for it; indeed, it was
  3098  seldom occupied. These offerings greatly helped to ease Tom's
  3099  conscience.
  3100  
  3101  The villagers had a strong desire to tar-and-feather Injun Joe and
  3102  ride him on a rail, for body-snatching, but so formidable was his
  3103  character that nobody could be found who was willing to take the lead
  3104  in the matter, so it was dropped. He had been careful to begin both of
  3105  his inquest-statements with the fight, without confessing the
  3106  grave-robbery that preceded it; therefore it was deemed wisest not
  3107  to try the case in the courts at present.
  3108  
  3109  
  3110  
  3111  CHAPTER XII
  3112  
  3113  ONE of the reasons why Tom's mind had drifted away from its secret
  3114  troubles was, that it had found a new and weighty matter to interest
  3115  itself about. Becky Thatcher had stopped coming to school. Tom had
  3116  struggled with his pride a few days, and tried to "whistle her down the
  3117  wind," but failed. He began to find himself hanging around her father's
  3118  house, nights, and feeling very miserable. She was ill. What if she
  3119  should die! There was distraction in the thought. He no longer took an
  3120  interest in war, nor even in piracy. The charm of life was gone; there
  3121  was nothing but dreariness left. He put his hoop away, and his bat;
  3122  there was no joy in them any more. His aunt was concerned. She began to
  3123  try all manner of remedies on him. She was one of those people who are
  3124  infatuated with patent medicines and all new-fangled methods of
  3125  producing health or mending it. She was an inveterate experimenter in
  3126  these things. When something fresh in this line came out she was in a
  3127  fever, right away, to try it; not on herself, for she was never ailing,
  3128  but on anybody else that came handy. She was a subscriber for all the
  3129  "Health" periodicals and phrenological frauds; and the solemn ignorance
  3130  they were inflated with was breath to her nostrils. All the "rot" they
  3131  contained about ventilation, and how to go to bed, and how to get up,
  3132  and what to eat, and what to drink, and how much exercise to take, and
  3133  what frame of mind to keep one's self in, and what sort of clothing to
  3134  wear, was all gospel to her, and she never observed that her
  3135  health-journals of the current month customarily upset everything they
  3136  had recommended the month before. She was as simple-hearted and honest
  3137  as the day was long, and so she was an easy victim. She gathered
  3138  together her quack periodicals and her quack medicines, and thus armed
  3139  with death, went about on her pale horse, metaphorically speaking, with
  3140  "hell following after." But she never suspected that she was not an
  3141  angel of healing and the balm of Gilead in disguise, to the suffering
  3142  neighbors.
  3143  
  3144  The water treatment was new, now, and Tom's low condition was a
  3145  windfall to her. She had him out at daylight every morning, stood him
  3146  up in the woodshed and drowned him with a deluge of cold water; then
  3147  she scrubbed him down with a towel like a file, and so brought him to;
  3148  then she rolled him up in a wet sheet and put him away under blankets
  3149  till she sweated his soul clean and "the yellow stains of it came
  3150  through his pores"--as Tom said.
  3151  
  3152  Yet notwithstanding all this, the boy grew more and more melancholy
  3153  and pale and dejected. She added hot baths, sitz baths, shower baths,
  3154  and plunges. The boy remained as dismal as a hearse. She began to
  3155  assist the water with a slim oatmeal diet and blister-plasters. She
  3156  calculated his capacity as she would a jug's, and filled him up every
  3157  day with quack cure-alls.
  3158  
  3159  Tom had become indifferent to persecution by this time. This phase
  3160  filled the old lady's heart with consternation. This indifference must
  3161  be broken up at any cost. Now she heard of Pain-killer for the first
  3162  time. She ordered a lot at once. She tasted it and was filled with
  3163  gratitude. It was simply fire in a liquid form. She dropped the water
  3164  treatment and everything else, and pinned her faith to Pain-killer. She
  3165  gave Tom a teaspoonful and watched with the deepest anxiety for the
  3166  result. Her troubles were instantly at rest, her soul at peace again;
  3167  for the "indifference" was broken up. The boy could not have shown a
  3168  wilder, heartier interest, if she had built a fire under him.
  3169  
  3170  Tom felt that it was time to wake up; this sort of life might be
  3171  romantic enough, in his blighted condition, but it was getting to have
  3172  too little sentiment and too much distracting variety about it. So he
  3173  thought over various plans for relief, and finally hit pon that of
  3174  professing to be fond of Pain-killer. He asked for it so often that he
  3175  became a nuisance, and his aunt ended by telling him to help himself
  3176  and quit bothering her. If it had been Sid, she would have had no
  3177  misgivings to alloy her delight; but since it was Tom, she watched the
  3178  bottle clandestinely. She found that the medicine did really diminish,
  3179  but it did not occur to her that the boy was mending the health of a
  3180  crack in the sitting-room floor with it.
  3181  
  3182  One day Tom was in the act of dosing the crack when his aunt's yellow
  3183  cat came along, purring, eying the teaspoon avariciously, and begging
  3184  for a taste. Tom said:
  3185  
  3186  "Don't ask for it unless you want it, Peter."
  3187  
  3188  But Peter signified that he did want it.
  3189  
  3190  "You better make sure."
  3191  
  3192  Peter was sure.
  3193  
  3194  "Now you've asked for it, and I'll give it to you, because there ain't
  3195  anything mean about me; but if you find you don't like it, you mustn't
  3196  blame anybody but your own self."
  3197  
  3198  Peter was agreeable. So Tom pried his mouth open and poured down the
  3199  Pain-killer. Peter sprang a couple of yards in the air, and then
  3200  delivered a war-whoop and set off round and round the room, banging
  3201  against furniture, upsetting flower-pots, and making general havoc.
  3202  Next he rose on his hind feet and pranced around, in a frenzy of
  3203  enjoyment, with his head over his shoulder and his voice proclaiming
  3204  his unappeasable happiness. Then he went tearing around the house again
  3205  spreading chaos and destruction in his path. Aunt Polly entered in time
  3206  to see him throw a few double summersets, deliver a final mighty
  3207  hurrah, and sail through the open window, carrying the rest of the
  3208  flower-pots with him. The old lady stood petrified with astonishment,
  3209  peering over her glasses; Tom lay on the floor expiring with laughter.
  3210  
  3211  "Tom, what on earth ails that cat?"
  3212  
  3213  "I don't know, aunt," gasped the boy.
  3214  
  3215  "Why, I never see anything like it. What did make him act so?"
  3216  
  3217  "Deed I don't know, Aunt Polly; cats always act so when they're having
  3218  a good time."
  3219  
  3220  "They do, do they?" There was something in the tone that made Tom
  3221  apprehensive.
  3222  
  3223  "Yes'm. That is, I believe they do."
  3224  
  3225  "You DO?"
  3226  
  3227  "Yes'm."
  3228  
  3229  The old lady was bending down, Tom watching, with interest emphasized
  3230  by anxiety. Too late he divined her "drift." The handle of the telltale
  3231  teaspoon was visible under the bed-valance. Aunt Polly took it, held it
  3232  up. Tom winced, and dropped his eyes. Aunt Polly raised him by the
  3233  usual handle--his ear--and cracked his head soundly with her thimble.
  3234  
  3235  "Now, sir, what did you want to treat that poor dumb beast so, for?"
  3236  
  3237  "I done it out of pity for him--because he hadn't any aunt."
  3238  
  3239  "Hadn't any aunt!--you numskull. What has that got to do with it?"
  3240  
  3241  "Heaps. Because if he'd had one she'd a burnt him out herself! She'd a
  3242  roasted his bowels out of him 'thout any more feeling than if he was a
  3243  human!"
  3244  
  3245  Aunt Polly felt a sudden pang of remorse. This was putting the thing
  3246  in a new light; what was cruelty to a cat MIGHT be cruelty to a boy,
  3247  too. She began to soften; she felt sorry. Her eyes watered a little,
  3248  and she put her hand on Tom's head and said gently:
  3249  
  3250  "I was meaning for the best, Tom. And, Tom, it DID do you good."
  3251  
  3252  Tom looked up in her face with just a perceptible twinkle peeping
  3253  through his gravity.
  3254  
  3255  "I know you was meaning for the best, aunty, and so was I with Peter.
  3256  It done HIM good, too. I never see him get around so since--"
  3257  
  3258  "Oh, go 'long with you, Tom, before you aggravate me again. And you
  3259  try and see if you can't be a good boy, for once, and you needn't take
  3260  any more medicine."
  3261  
  3262  Tom reached school ahead of time. It was noticed that this strange
  3263  thing had been occurring every day latterly. And now, as usual of late,
  3264  he hung about the gate of the schoolyard instead of playing with his
  3265  comrades. He was sick, he said, and he looked it. He tried to seem to
  3266  be looking everywhere but whither he really was looking--down the road.
  3267  Presently Jeff Thatcher hove in sight, and Tom's face lighted; he gazed
  3268  a moment, and then turned sorrowfully away. When Jeff arrived, Tom
  3269  accosted him; and "led up" warily to opportunities for remark about
  3270  Becky, but the giddy lad never could see the bait. Tom watched and
  3271  watched, hoping whenever a frisking frock came in sight, and hating the
  3272  owner of it as soon as he saw she was not the right one. At last frocks
  3273  ceased to appear, and he dropped hopelessly into the dumps; he entered
  3274  the empty schoolhouse and sat down to suffer. Then one more frock
  3275  passed in at the gate, and Tom's heart gave a great bound. The next
  3276  instant he was out, and "going on" like an Indian; yelling, laughing,
  3277  chasing boys, jumping over the fence at risk of life and limb, throwing
  3278  handsprings, standing on his head--doing all the heroic things he could
  3279  conceive of, and keeping a furtive eye out, all the while, to see if
  3280  Becky Thatcher was noticing. But she seemed to be unconscious of it
  3281  all; she never looked. Could it be possible that she was not aware that
  3282  he was there? He carried his exploits to her immediate vicinity; came
  3283  war-whooping around, snatched a boy's cap, hurled it to the roof of the
  3284  schoolhouse, broke through a group of boys, tumbling them in every
  3285  direction, and fell sprawling, himself, under Becky's nose, almost
  3286  upsetting her--and she turned, with her nose in the air, and he heard
  3287  her say: "Mf! some people think they're mighty smart--always showing
  3288  off!"
  3289  
  3290  Tom's cheeks burned. He gathered himself up and sneaked off, crushed
  3291  and crestfallen.
  3292  
  3293  
  3294  
  3295  CHAPTER XIII
  3296  
  3297  TOM'S mind was made up now. He was gloomy and desperate. He was a
  3298  forsaken, friendless boy, he said; nobody loved him; when they found
  3299  out what they had driven him to, perhaps they would be sorry; he had
  3300  tried to do right and get along, but they would not let him; since
  3301  nothing would do them but to be rid of him, let it be so; and let them
  3302  blame HIM for the consequences--why shouldn't they? What right had the
  3303  friendless to complain? Yes, they had forced him to it at last: he
  3304  would lead a life of crime. There was no choice.
  3305  
  3306  By this time he was far down Meadow Lane, and the bell for school to
  3307  "take up" tinkled faintly upon his ear. He sobbed, now, to think he
  3308  should never, never hear that old familiar sound any more--it was very
  3309  hard, but it was forced on him; since he was driven out into the cold
  3310  world, he must submit--but he forgave them. Then the sobs came thick
  3311  and fast.
  3312  
  3313  Just at this point he met his soul's sworn comrade, Joe Harper
  3314  --hard-eyed, and with evidently a great and dismal purpose in his heart.
  3315  Plainly here were "two souls with but a single thought." Tom, wiping
  3316  his eyes with his sleeve, began to blubber out something about a
  3317  resolution to escape from hard usage and lack of sympathy at home by
  3318  roaming abroad into the great world never to return; and ended by
  3319  hoping that Joe would not forget him.
  3320  
  3321  But it transpired that this was a request which Joe had just been
  3322  going to make of Tom, and had come to hunt him up for that purpose. His
  3323  mother had whipped him for drinking some cream which he had never
  3324  tasted and knew nothing about; it was plain that she was tired of him
  3325  and wished him to go; if she felt that way, there was nothing for him
  3326  to do but succumb; he hoped she would be happy, and never regret having
  3327  driven her poor boy out into the unfeeling world to suffer and die.
  3328  
  3329  As the two boys walked sorrowing along, they made a new compact to
  3330  stand by each other and be brothers and never separate till death
  3331  relieved them of their troubles. Then they began to lay their plans.
  3332  Joe was for being a hermit, and living on crusts in a remote cave, and
  3333  dying, some time, of cold and want and grief; but after listening to
  3334  Tom, he conceded that there were some conspicuous advantages about a
  3335  life of crime, and so he consented to be a pirate.
  3336  
  3337  Three miles below St. Petersburg, at a point where the Mississippi
  3338  River was a trifle over a mile wide, there was a long, narrow, wooded
  3339  island, with a shallow bar at the head of it, and this offered well as
  3340  a rendezvous. It was not inhabited; it lay far over toward the further
  3341  shore, abreast a dense and almost wholly unpeopled forest. So Jackson's
  3342  Island was chosen. Who were to be the subjects of their piracies was a
  3343  matter that did not occur to them. Then they hunted up Huckleberry
  3344  Finn, and he joined them promptly, for all careers were one to him; he
  3345  was indifferent. They presently separated to meet at a lonely spot on
  3346  the river-bank two miles above the village at the favorite hour--which
  3347  was midnight. There was a small log raft there which they meant to
  3348  capture. Each would bring hooks and lines, and such provision as he
  3349  could steal in the most dark and mysterious way--as became outlaws. And
  3350  before the afternoon was done, they had all managed to enjoy the sweet
  3351  glory of spreading the fact that pretty soon the town would "hear
  3352  something." All who got this vague hint were cautioned to "be mum and
  3353  wait."
  3354  
  3355  About midnight Tom arrived with a boiled ham and a few trifles,
  3356  and stopped in a dense undergrowth on a small bluff overlooking the
  3357  meeting-place. It was starlight, and very still. The mighty river lay
  3358  like an ocean at rest. Tom listened a moment, but no sound disturbed the
  3359  quiet. Then he gave a low, distinct whistle. It was answered from under
  3360  the bluff. Tom whistled twice more; these signals were answered in the
  3361  same way. Then a guarded voice said:
  3362  
  3363  "Who goes there?"
  3364  
  3365  "Tom Sawyer, the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main. Name your names."
  3366  
  3367  "Huck Finn the Red-Handed, and Joe Harper the Terror of the Seas." Tom
  3368  had furnished these titles, from his favorite literature.
  3369  
  3370  "'Tis well. Give the countersign."
  3371  
  3372  Two hoarse whispers delivered the same awful word simultaneously to
  3373  the brooding night:
  3374  
  3375  "BLOOD!"
  3376  
  3377  Then Tom tumbled his ham over the bluff and let himself down after it,
  3378  tearing both skin and clothes to some extent in the effort. There was
  3379  an easy, comfortable path along the shore under the bluff, but it
  3380  lacked the advantages of difficulty and danger so valued by a pirate.
  3381  
  3382  The Terror of the Seas had brought a side of bacon, and had about worn
  3383  himself out with getting it there. Finn the Red-Handed had stolen a
  3384  skillet and a quantity of half-cured leaf tobacco, and had also brought
  3385  a few corn-cobs to make pipes with. But none of the pirates smoked or
  3386  "chewed" but himself. The Black Avenger of the Spanish Main said it
  3387  would never do to start without some fire. That was a wise thought;
  3388  matches were hardly known there in that day. They saw a fire
  3389  smouldering upon a great raft a hundred yards above, and they went
  3390  stealthily thither and helped themselves to a chunk. They made an
  3391  imposing adventure of it, saying, "Hist!" every now and then, and
  3392  suddenly halting with finger on lip; moving with hands on imaginary
  3393  dagger-hilts; and giving orders in dismal whispers that if "the foe"
  3394  stirred, to "let him have it to the hilt," because "dead men tell no
  3395  tales." They knew well enough that the raftsmen were all down at the
  3396  village laying in stores or having a spree, but still that was no
  3397  excuse for their conducting this thing in an unpiratical way.
  3398  
  3399  They shoved off, presently, Tom in command, Huck at the after oar and
  3400  Joe at the forward. Tom stood amidships, gloomy-browed, and with folded
  3401  arms, and gave his orders in a low, stern whisper:
  3402  
  3403  "Luff, and bring her to the wind!"
  3404  
  3405  "Aye-aye, sir!"
  3406  
  3407  "Steady, steady-y-y-y!"
  3408  
  3409  "Steady it is, sir!"
  3410  
  3411  "Let her go off a point!"
  3412  
  3413  "Point it is, sir!"
  3414  
  3415  As the boys steadily and monotonously drove the raft toward mid-stream
  3416  it was no doubt understood that these orders were given only for
  3417  "style," and were not intended to mean anything in particular.
  3418  
  3419  "What sail's she carrying?"
  3420  
  3421  "Courses, tops'ls, and flying-jib, sir."
  3422  
  3423  "Send the r'yals up! Lay out aloft, there, half a dozen of ye
  3424  --foretopmaststuns'l! Lively, now!"
  3425  
  3426  "Aye-aye, sir!"
  3427  
  3428  "Shake out that maintogalans'l! Sheets and braces! NOW my hearties!"
  3429  
  3430  "Aye-aye, sir!"
  3431  
  3432  "Hellum-a-lee--hard a port! Stand by to meet her when she comes! Port,
  3433  port! NOW, men! With a will! Stead-y-y-y!"
  3434  
  3435  "Steady it is, sir!"
  3436  
  3437  The raft drew beyond the middle of the river; the boys pointed her
  3438  head right, and then lay on their oars. The river was not high, so
  3439  there was not more than a two or three mile current. Hardly a word was
  3440  said during the next three-quarters of an hour. Now the raft was
  3441  passing before the distant town. Two or three glimmering lights showed
  3442  where it lay, peacefully sleeping, beyond the vague vast sweep of
  3443  star-gemmed water, unconscious of the tremendous event that was happening.
  3444  The Black Avenger stood still with folded arms, "looking his last" upon
  3445  the scene of his former joys and his later sufferings, and wishing
  3446  "she" could see him now, abroad on the wild sea, facing peril and death
  3447  with dauntless heart, going to his doom with a grim smile on his lips.
  3448  It was but a small strain on his imagination to remove Jackson's Island
  3449  beyond eyeshot of the village, and so he "looked his last" with a
  3450  broken and satisfied heart. The other pirates were looking their last,
  3451  too; and they all looked so long that they came near letting the
  3452  current drift them out of the range of the island. But they discovered
  3453  the danger in time, and made shift to avert it. About two o'clock in
  3454  the morning the raft grounded on the bar two hundred yards above the
  3455  head of the island, and they waded back and forth until they had landed
  3456  their freight. Part of the little raft's belongings consisted of an old
  3457  sail, and this they spread over a nook in the bushes for a tent to
  3458  shelter their provisions; but they themselves would sleep in the open
  3459  air in good weather, as became outlaws.
  3460  
  3461  They built a fire against the side of a great log twenty or thirty
  3462  steps within the sombre depths of the forest, and then cooked some
  3463  bacon in the frying-pan for supper, and used up half of the corn "pone"
  3464  stock they had brought. It seemed glorious sport to be feasting in that
  3465  wild, free way in the virgin forest of an unexplored and uninhabited
  3466  island, far from the haunts of men, and they said they never would
  3467  return to civilization. The climbing fire lit up their faces and threw
  3468  its ruddy glare upon the pillared tree-trunks of their forest temple,
  3469  and upon the varnished foliage and festooning vines.
  3470  
  3471  When the last crisp slice of bacon was gone, and the last allowance of
  3472  corn pone devoured, the boys stretched themselves out on the grass,
  3473  filled with contentment. They could have found a cooler place, but they
  3474  would not deny themselves such a romantic feature as the roasting
  3475  camp-fire.
  3476  
  3477  "AIN'T it gay?" said Joe.
  3478  
  3479  "It's NUTS!" said Tom. "What would the boys say if they could see us?"
  3480  
  3481  "Say? Well, they'd just die to be here--hey, Hucky!"
  3482  
  3483  "I reckon so," said Huckleberry; "anyways, I'm suited. I don't want
  3484  nothing better'n this. I don't ever get enough to eat, gen'ally--and
  3485  here they can't come and pick at a feller and bullyrag him so."
  3486  
  3487  "It's just the life for me," said Tom. "You don't have to get up,
  3488  mornings, and you don't have to go to school, and wash, and all that
  3489  blame foolishness. You see a pirate don't have to do ANYTHING, Joe,
  3490  when he's ashore, but a hermit HE has to be praying considerable, and
  3491  then he don't have any fun, anyway, all by himself that way."
  3492  
  3493  "Oh yes, that's so," said Joe, "but I hadn't thought much about it,
  3494  you know. I'd a good deal rather be a pirate, now that I've tried it."
  3495  
  3496  "You see," said Tom, "people don't go much on hermits, nowadays, like
  3497  they used to in old times, but a pirate's always respected. And a
  3498  hermit's got to sleep on the hardest place he can find, and put
  3499  sackcloth and ashes on his head, and stand out in the rain, and--"
  3500  
  3501  "What does he put sackcloth and ashes on his head for?" inquired Huck.
  3502  
  3503  "I dono. But they've GOT to do it. Hermits always do. You'd have to do
  3504  that if you was a hermit."
  3505  
  3506  "Dern'd if I would," said Huck.
  3507  
  3508  "Well, what would you do?"
  3509  
  3510  "I dono. But I wouldn't do that."
  3511  
  3512  "Why, Huck, you'd HAVE to. How'd you get around it?"
  3513  
  3514  "Why, I just wouldn't stand it. I'd run away."
  3515  
  3516  "Run away! Well, you WOULD be a nice old slouch of a hermit. You'd be
  3517  a disgrace."
  3518  
  3519  The Red-Handed made no response, being better employed. He had
  3520  finished gouging out a cob, and now he fitted a weed stem to it, loaded
  3521  it with tobacco, and was pressing a coal to the charge and blowing a
  3522  cloud of fragrant smoke--he was in the full bloom of luxurious
  3523  contentment. The other pirates envied him this majestic vice, and
  3524  secretly resolved to acquire it shortly. Presently Huck said:
  3525  
  3526  "What does pirates have to do?"
  3527  
  3528  Tom said:
  3529  
  3530  "Oh, they have just a bully time--take ships and burn them, and get
  3531  the money and bury it in awful places in their island where there's
  3532  ghosts and things to watch it, and kill everybody in the ships--make
  3533  'em walk a plank."
  3534  
  3535  "And they carry the women to the island," said Joe; "they don't kill
  3536  the women."
  3537  
  3538  "No," assented Tom, "they don't kill the women--they're too noble. And
  3539  the women's always beautiful, too.
  3540  
  3541  "And don't they wear the bulliest clothes! Oh no! All gold and silver
  3542  and di'monds," said Joe, with enthusiasm.
  3543  
  3544  "Who?" said Huck.
  3545  
  3546  "Why, the pirates."
  3547  
  3548  Huck scanned his own clothing forlornly.
  3549  
  3550  "I reckon I ain't dressed fitten for a pirate," said he, with a
  3551  regretful pathos in his voice; "but I ain't got none but these."
  3552  
  3553  But the other boys told him the fine clothes would come fast enough,
  3554  after they should have begun their adventures. They made him understand
  3555  that his poor rags would do to begin with, though it was customary for
  3556  wealthy pirates to start with a proper wardrobe.
  3557  
  3558  Gradually their talk died out and drowsiness began to steal upon the
  3559  eyelids of the little waifs. The pipe dropped from the fingers of the
  3560  Red-Handed, and he slept the sleep of the conscience-free and the
  3561  weary. The Terror of the Seas and the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main
  3562  had more difficulty in getting to sleep. They said their prayers
  3563  inwardly, and lying down, since there was nobody there with authority
  3564  to make them kneel and recite aloud; in truth, they had a mind not to
  3565  say them at all, but they were afraid to proceed to such lengths as
  3566  that, lest they might call down a sudden and special thunderbolt from
  3567  heaven. Then at once they reached and hovered upon the imminent verge
  3568  of sleep--but an intruder came, now, that would not "down." It was
  3569  conscience. They began to feel a vague fear that they had been doing
  3570  wrong to run away; and next they thought of the stolen meat, and then
  3571  the real torture came. They tried to argue it away by reminding
  3572  conscience that they had purloined sweetmeats and apples scores of
  3573  times; but conscience was not to be appeased by such thin
  3574  plausibilities; it seemed to them, in the end, that there was no
  3575  getting around the stubborn fact that taking sweetmeats was only
  3576  "hooking," while taking bacon and hams and such valuables was plain
  3577  simple stealing--and there was a command against that in the Bible. So
  3578  they inwardly resolved that so long as they remained in the business,
  3579  their piracies should not again be sullied with the crime of stealing.
  3580  Then conscience granted a truce, and these curiously inconsistent
  3581  pirates fell peacefully to sleep.
  3582  
  3583  
  3584  
  3585  CHAPTER XIV
  3586  
  3587  WHEN Tom awoke in the morning, he wondered where he was. He sat up and
  3588  rubbed his eyes and looked around. Then he comprehended. It was the
  3589  cool gray dawn, and there was a delicious sense of repose and peace in
  3590  the deep pervading calm and silence of the woods. Not a leaf stirred;
  3591  not a sound obtruded upon great Nature's meditation. Beaded dewdrops
  3592  stood upon the leaves and grasses. A white layer of ashes covered the
  3593  fire, and a thin blue breath of smoke rose straight into the air. Joe
  3594  and Huck still slept.
  3595  
  3596  Now, far away in the woods a bird called; another answered; presently
  3597  the hammering of a woodpecker was heard. Gradually the cool dim gray of
  3598  the morning whitened, and as gradually sounds multiplied and life
  3599  manifested itself. The marvel of Nature shaking off sleep and going to
  3600  work unfolded itself to the musing boy. A little green worm came
  3601  crawling over a dewy leaf, lifting two-thirds of his body into the air
  3602  from time to time and "sniffing around," then proceeding again--for he
  3603  was measuring, Tom said; and when the worm approached him, of its own
  3604  accord, he sat as still as a stone, with his hopes rising and falling,
  3605  by turns, as the creature still came toward him or seemed inclined to
  3606  go elsewhere; and when at last it considered a painful moment with its
  3607  curved body in the air and then came decisively down upon Tom's leg and
  3608  began a journey over him, his whole heart was glad--for that meant that
  3609  he was going to have a new suit of clothes--without the shadow of a
  3610  doubt a gaudy piratical uniform. Now a procession of ants appeared,
  3611  from nowhere in particular, and went about their labors; one struggled
  3612  manfully by with a dead spider five times as big as itself in its arms,
  3613  and lugged it straight up a tree-trunk. A brown spotted lady-bug
  3614  climbed the dizzy height of a grass blade, and Tom bent down close to
  3615  it and said, "Lady-bug, lady-bug, fly away home, your house is on fire,
  3616  your children's alone," and she took wing and went off to see about it
  3617  --which did not surprise the boy, for he knew of old that this insect was
  3618  credulous about conflagrations, and he had practised upon its
  3619  simplicity more than once. A tumblebug came next, heaving sturdily at
  3620  its ball, and Tom touched the creature, to see it shut its legs against
  3621  its body and pretend to be dead. The birds were fairly rioting by this
  3622  time. A catbird, the Northern mocker, lit in a tree over Tom's head,
  3623  and trilled out her imitations of her neighbors in a rapture of
  3624  enjoyment; then a shrill jay swept down, a flash of blue flame, and
  3625  stopped on a twig almost within the boy's reach, cocked his head to one
  3626  side and eyed the strangers with a consuming curiosity; a gray squirrel
  3627  and a big fellow of the "fox" kind came skurrying along, sitting up at
  3628  intervals to inspect and chatter at the boys, for the wild things had
  3629  probably never seen a human being before and scarcely knew whether to
  3630  be afraid or not. All Nature was wide awake and stirring, now; long
  3631  lances of sunlight pierced down through the dense foliage far and near,
  3632  and a few butterflies came fluttering upon the scene.
  3633  
  3634  Tom stirred up the other pirates and they all clattered away with a
  3635  shout, and in a minute or two were stripped and chasing after and
  3636  tumbling over each other in the shallow limpid water of the white
  3637  sandbar. They felt no longing for the little village sleeping in the
  3638  distance beyond the majestic waste of water. A vagrant current or a
  3639  slight rise in the river had carried off their raft, but this only
  3640  gratified them, since its going was something like burning the bridge
  3641  between them and civilization.
  3642  
  3643  They came back to camp wonderfully refreshed, glad-hearted, and
  3644  ravenous; and they soon had the camp-fire blazing up again. Huck found
  3645  a spring of clear cold water close by, and the boys made cups of broad
  3646  oak or hickory leaves, and felt that water, sweetened with such a
  3647  wildwood charm as that, would be a good enough substitute for coffee.
  3648  While Joe was slicing bacon for breakfast, Tom and Huck asked him to
  3649  hold on a minute; they stepped to a promising nook in the river-bank
  3650  and threw in their lines; almost immediately they had reward. Joe had
  3651  not had time to get impatient before they were back again with some
  3652  handsome bass, a couple of sun-perch and a small catfish--provisions
  3653  enough for quite a family. They fried the fish with the bacon, and were
  3654  astonished; for no fish had ever seemed so delicious before. They did
  3655  not know that the quicker a fresh-water fish is on the fire after he is
  3656  caught the better he is; and they reflected little upon what a sauce
  3657  open-air sleeping, open-air exercise, bathing, and a large ingredient
  3658  of hunger make, too.
  3659  
  3660  They lay around in the shade, after breakfast, while Huck had a smoke,
  3661  and then went off through the woods on an exploring expedition. They
  3662  tramped gayly along, over decaying logs, through tangled underbrush,
  3663  among solemn monarchs of the forest, hung from their crowns to the
  3664  ground with a drooping regalia of grape-vines. Now and then they came
  3665  upon snug nooks carpeted with grass and jeweled with flowers.
  3666  
  3667  They found plenty of things to be delighted with, but nothing to be
  3668  astonished at. They discovered that the island was about three miles
  3669  long and a quarter of a mile wide, and that the shore it lay closest to
  3670  was only separated from it by a narrow channel hardly two hundred yards
  3671  wide. They took a swim about every hour, so it was close upon the
  3672  middle of the afternoon when they got back to camp. They were too
  3673  hungry to stop to fish, but they fared sumptuously upon cold ham, and
  3674  then threw themselves down in the shade to talk. But the talk soon
  3675  began to drag, and then died. The stillness, the solemnity that brooded
  3676  in the woods, and the sense of loneliness, began to tell upon the
  3677  spirits of the boys. They fell to thinking. A sort of undefined longing
  3678  crept upon them. This took dim shape, presently--it was budding
  3679  homesickness. Even Finn the Red-Handed was dreaming of his doorsteps
  3680  and empty hogsheads. But they were all ashamed of their weakness, and
  3681  none was brave enough to speak his thought.
  3682  
  3683  For some time, now, the boys had been dully conscious of a peculiar
  3684  sound in the distance, just as one sometimes is of the ticking of a
  3685  clock which he takes no distinct note of. But now this mysterious sound
  3686  became more pronounced, and forced a recognition. The boys started,
  3687  glanced at each other, and then each assumed a listening attitude.
  3688  There was a long silence, profound and unbroken; then a deep, sullen
  3689  boom came floating down out of the distance.
  3690  
  3691  "What is it!" exclaimed Joe, under his breath.
  3692  
  3693  "I wonder," said Tom in a whisper.
  3694  
  3695  "'Tain't thunder," said Huckleberry, in an awed tone, "becuz thunder--"
  3696  
  3697  "Hark!" said Tom. "Listen--don't talk."
  3698  
  3699  They waited a time that seemed an age, and then the same muffled boom
  3700  troubled the solemn hush.
  3701  
  3702  "Let's go and see."
  3703  
  3704  They sprang to their feet and hurried to the shore toward the town.
  3705  They parted the bushes on the bank and peered out over the water. The
  3706  little steam ferryboat was about a mile below the village, drifting
  3707  with the current. Her broad deck seemed crowded with people. There were
  3708  a great many skiffs rowing about or floating with the stream in the
  3709  neighborhood of the ferryboat, but the boys could not determine what
  3710  the men in them were doing. Presently a great jet of white smoke burst
  3711  from the ferryboat's side, and as it expanded and rose in a lazy cloud,
  3712  that same dull throb of sound was borne to the listeners again.
  3713  
  3714  "I know now!" exclaimed Tom; "somebody's drownded!"
  3715  
  3716  "That's it!" said Huck; "they done that last summer, when Bill Turner
  3717  got drownded; they shoot a cannon over the water, and that makes him
  3718  come up to the top. Yes, and they take loaves of bread and put
  3719  quicksilver in 'em and set 'em afloat, and wherever there's anybody
  3720  that's drownded, they'll float right there and stop."
  3721  
  3722  "Yes, I've heard about that," said Joe. "I wonder what makes the bread
  3723  do that."
  3724  
  3725  "Oh, it ain't the bread, so much," said Tom; "I reckon it's mostly
  3726  what they SAY over it before they start it out."
  3727  
  3728  "But they don't say anything over it," said Huck. "I've seen 'em and
  3729  they don't."
  3730  
  3731  "Well, that's funny," said Tom. "But maybe they say it to themselves.
  3732  Of COURSE they do. Anybody might know that."
  3733  
  3734  The other boys agreed that there was reason in what Tom said, because
  3735  an ignorant lump of bread, uninstructed by an incantation, could not be
  3736  expected to act very intelligently when set upon an errand of such
  3737  gravity.
  3738  
  3739  "By jings, I wish I was over there, now," said Joe.
  3740  
  3741  "I do too" said Huck "I'd give heaps to know who it is."
  3742  
  3743  The boys still listened and watched. Presently a revealing thought
  3744  flashed through Tom's mind, and he exclaimed:
  3745  
  3746  "Boys, I know who's drownded--it's us!"
  3747  
  3748  They felt like heroes in an instant. Here was a gorgeous triumph; they
  3749  were missed; they were mourned; hearts were breaking on their account;
  3750  tears were being shed; accusing memories of unkindness to these poor
  3751  lost lads were rising up, and unavailing regrets and remorse were being
  3752  indulged; and best of all, the departed were the talk of the whole
  3753  town, and the envy of all the boys, as far as this dazzling notoriety
  3754  was concerned. This was fine. It was worth while to be a pirate, after
  3755  all.
  3756  
  3757  As twilight drew on, the ferryboat went back to her accustomed
  3758  business and the skiffs disappeared. The pirates returned to camp. They
  3759  were jubilant with vanity over their new grandeur and the illustrious
  3760  trouble they were making. They caught fish, cooked supper and ate it,
  3761  and then fell to guessing at what the village was thinking and saying
  3762  about them; and the pictures they drew of the public distress on their
  3763  account were gratifying to look upon--from their point of view. But
  3764  when the shadows of night closed them in, they gradually ceased to
  3765  talk, and sat gazing into the fire, with their minds evidently
  3766  wandering elsewhere. The excitement was gone, now, and Tom and Joe
  3767  could not keep back thoughts of certain persons at home who were not
  3768  enjoying this fine frolic as much as they were. Misgivings came; they
  3769  grew troubled and unhappy; a sigh or two escaped, unawares. By and by
  3770  Joe timidly ventured upon a roundabout "feeler" as to how the others
  3771  might look upon a return to civilization--not right now, but--
  3772  
  3773  Tom withered him with derision! Huck, being uncommitted as yet, joined
  3774  in with Tom, and the waverer quickly "explained," and was glad to get
  3775  out of the scrape with as little taint of chicken-hearted homesickness
  3776  clinging to his garments as he could. Mutiny was effectually laid to
  3777  rest for the moment.
  3778  
  3779  As the night deepened, Huck began to nod, and presently to snore. Joe
  3780  followed next. Tom lay upon his elbow motionless, for some time,
  3781  watching the two intently. At last he got up cautiously, on his knees,
  3782  and went searching among the grass and the flickering reflections flung
  3783  by the camp-fire. He picked up and inspected several large
  3784  semi-cylinders of the thin white bark of a sycamore, and finally chose
  3785  two which seemed to suit him. Then he knelt by the fire and painfully
  3786  wrote something upon each of these with his "red keel"; one he rolled up
  3787  and put in his jacket pocket, and the other he put in Joe's hat and
  3788  removed it to a little distance from the owner. And he also put into the
  3789  hat certain schoolboy treasures of almost inestimable value--among them
  3790  a lump of chalk, an India-rubber ball, three fishhooks, and one of that
  3791  kind of marbles known as a "sure 'nough crystal." Then he tiptoed his
  3792  way cautiously among the trees till he felt that he was out of hearing,
  3793  and straightway broke into a keen run in the direction of the sandbar.
  3794  
  3795  
  3796  
  3797  CHAPTER XV
  3798  
  3799  A FEW minutes later Tom was in the shoal water of the bar, wading
  3800  toward the Illinois shore. Before the depth reached his middle he was
  3801  half-way over; the current would permit no more wading, now, so he
  3802  struck out confidently to swim the remaining hundred yards. He swam
  3803  quartering upstream, but still was swept downward rather faster than he
  3804  had expected. However, he reached the shore finally, and drifted along
  3805  till he found a low place and drew himself out. He put his hand on his
  3806  jacket pocket, found his piece of bark safe, and then struck through
  3807  the woods, following the shore, with streaming garments. Shortly before
  3808  ten o'clock he came out into an open place opposite the village, and
  3809  saw the ferryboat lying in the shadow of the trees and the high bank.
  3810  Everything was quiet under the blinking stars. He crept down the bank,
  3811  watching with all his eyes, slipped into the water, swam three or four
  3812  strokes and climbed into the skiff that did "yawl" duty at the boat's
  3813  stern. He laid himself down under the thwarts and waited, panting.
  3814  
  3815  Presently the cracked bell tapped and a voice gave the order to "cast
  3816  off." A minute or two later the skiff's head was standing high up,
  3817  against the boat's swell, and the voyage was begun. Tom felt happy in
  3818  his success, for he knew it was the boat's last trip for the night. At
  3819  the end of a long twelve or fifteen minutes the wheels stopped, and Tom
  3820  slipped overboard and swam ashore in the dusk, landing fifty yards
  3821  downstream, out of danger of possible stragglers.
  3822  
  3823  He flew along unfrequented alleys, and shortly found himself at his
  3824  aunt's back fence. He climbed over, approached the "ell," and looked in
  3825  at the sitting-room window, for a light was burning there. There sat
  3826  Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, and Joe Harper's mother, grouped together,
  3827  talking. They were by the bed, and the bed was between them and the
  3828  door. Tom went to the door and began to softly lift the latch; then he
  3829  pressed gently and the door yielded a crack; he continued pushing
  3830  cautiously, and quaking every time it creaked, till he judged he might
  3831  squeeze through on his knees; so he put his head through and began,
  3832  warily.
  3833  
  3834  "What makes the candle blow so?" said Aunt Polly. Tom hurried up.
  3835  "Why, that door's open, I believe. Why, of course it is. No end of
  3836  strange things now. Go 'long and shut it, Sid."
  3837  
  3838  Tom disappeared under the bed just in time. He lay and "breathed"
  3839  himself for a time, and then crept to where he could almost touch his
  3840  aunt's foot.
  3841  
  3842  "But as I was saying," said Aunt Polly, "he warn't BAD, so to say
  3843  --only mischEEvous. Only just giddy, and harum-scarum, you know. He
  3844  warn't any more responsible than a colt. HE never meant any harm, and
  3845  he was the best-hearted boy that ever was"--and she began to cry.
  3846  
  3847  "It was just so with my Joe--always full of his devilment, and up to
  3848  every kind of mischief, but he was just as unselfish and kind as he
  3849  could be--and laws bless me, to think I went and whipped him for taking
  3850  that cream, never once recollecting that I throwed it out myself
  3851  because it was sour, and I never to see him again in this world, never,
  3852  never, never, poor abused boy!" And Mrs. Harper sobbed as if her heart
  3853  would break.
  3854  
  3855  "I hope Tom's better off where he is," said Sid, "but if he'd been
  3856  better in some ways--"
  3857  
  3858  "SID!" Tom felt the glare of the old lady's eye, though he could not
  3859  see it. "Not a word against my Tom, now that he's gone! God'll take
  3860  care of HIM--never you trouble YOURself, sir! Oh, Mrs. Harper, I don't
  3861  know how to give him up! I don't know how to give him up! He was such a
  3862  comfort to me, although he tormented my old heart out of me, 'most."
  3863  
  3864  "The Lord giveth and the Lord hath taken away--Blessed be the name of
  3865  the Lord! But it's so hard--Oh, it's so hard! Only last Saturday my
  3866  Joe busted a firecracker right under my nose and I knocked him
  3867  sprawling. Little did I know then, how soon--Oh, if it was to do over
  3868  again I'd hug him and bless him for it."
  3869  
  3870  "Yes, yes, yes, I know just how you feel, Mrs. Harper, I know just
  3871  exactly how you feel. No longer ago than yesterday noon, my Tom took
  3872  and filled the cat full of Pain-killer, and I did think the cretur
  3873  would tear the house down. And God forgive me, I cracked Tom's head
  3874  with my thimble, poor boy, poor dead boy. But he's out of all his
  3875  troubles now. And the last words I ever heard him say was to reproach--"
  3876  
  3877  But this memory was too much for the old lady, and she broke entirely
  3878  down. Tom was snuffling, now, himself--and more in pity of himself than
  3879  anybody else. He could hear Mary crying, and putting in a kindly word
  3880  for him from time to time. He began to have a nobler opinion of himself
  3881  than ever before. Still, he was sufficiently touched by his aunt's
  3882  grief to long to rush out from under the bed and overwhelm her with
  3883  joy--and the theatrical gorgeousness of the thing appealed strongly to
  3884  his nature, too, but he resisted and lay still.
  3885  
  3886  He went on listening, and gathered by odds and ends that it was
  3887  conjectured at first that the boys had got drowned while taking a swim;
  3888  then the small raft had been missed; next, certain boys said the
  3889  missing lads had promised that the village should "hear something"
  3890  soon; the wise-heads had "put this and that together" and decided that
  3891  the lads had gone off on that raft and would turn up at the next town
  3892  below, presently; but toward noon the raft had been found, lodged
  3893  against the Missouri shore some five or six miles below the village
  3894  --and then hope perished; they must be drowned, else hunger would have
  3895  driven them home by nightfall if not sooner. It was believed that the
  3896  search for the bodies had been a fruitless effort merely because the
  3897  drowning must have occurred in mid-channel, since the boys, being good
  3898  swimmers, would otherwise have escaped to shore. This was Wednesday
  3899  night. If the bodies continued missing until Sunday, all hope would be
  3900  given over, and the funerals would be preached on that morning. Tom
  3901  shuddered.
  3902  
  3903  Mrs. Harper gave a sobbing good-night and turned to go. Then with a
  3904  mutual impulse the two bereaved women flung themselves into each
  3905  other's arms and had a good, consoling cry, and then parted. Aunt Polly
  3906  was tender far beyond her wont, in her good-night to Sid and Mary. Sid
  3907  snuffled a bit and Mary went off crying with all her heart.
  3908  
  3909  Aunt Polly knelt down and prayed for Tom so touchingly, so
  3910  appealingly, and with such measureless love in her words and her old
  3911  trembling voice, that he was weltering in tears again, long before she
  3912  was through.
  3913  
  3914  He had to keep still long after she went to bed, for she kept making
  3915  broken-hearted ejaculations from time to time, tossing unrestfully, and
  3916  turning over. But at last she was still, only moaning a little in her
  3917  sleep. Now the boy stole out, rose gradually by the bedside, shaded the
  3918  candle-light with his hand, and stood regarding her. His heart was full
  3919  of pity for her. He took out his sycamore scroll and placed it by the
  3920  candle. But something occurred to him, and he lingered considering. His
  3921  face lighted with a happy solution of his thought; he put the bark
  3922  hastily in his pocket. Then he bent over and kissed the faded lips, and
  3923  straightway made his stealthy exit, latching the door behind him.
  3924  
  3925  He threaded his way back to the ferry landing, found nobody at large
  3926  there, and walked boldly on board the boat, for he knew she was
  3927  tenantless except that there was a watchman, who always turned in and
  3928  slept like a graven image. He untied the skiff at the stern, slipped
  3929  into it, and was soon rowing cautiously upstream. When he had pulled a
  3930  mile above the village, he started quartering across and bent himself
  3931  stoutly to his work. He hit the landing on the other side neatly, for
  3932  this was a familiar bit of work to him. He was moved to capture the
  3933  skiff, arguing that it might be considered a ship and therefore
  3934  legitimate prey for a pirate, but he knew a thorough search would be
  3935  made for it and that might end in revelations. So he stepped ashore and
  3936  entered the woods.
  3937  
  3938  He sat down and took a long rest, torturing himself meanwhile to keep
  3939  awake, and then started warily down the home-stretch. The night was far
  3940  spent. It was broad daylight before he found himself fairly abreast the
  3941  island bar. He rested again until the sun was well up and gilding the
  3942  great river with its splendor, and then he plunged into the stream. A
  3943  little later he paused, dripping, upon the threshold of the camp, and
  3944  heard Joe say:
  3945  
  3946  "No, Tom's true-blue, Huck, and he'll come back. He won't desert. He
  3947  knows that would be a disgrace to a pirate, and Tom's too proud for
  3948  that sort of thing. He's up to something or other. Now I wonder what?"
  3949  
  3950  "Well, the things is ours, anyway, ain't they?"
  3951  
  3952  "Pretty near, but not yet, Huck. The writing says they are if he ain't
  3953  back here to breakfast."
  3954  
  3955  "Which he is!" exclaimed Tom, with fine dramatic effect, stepping
  3956  grandly into camp.
  3957  
  3958  A sumptuous breakfast of bacon and fish was shortly provided, and as
  3959  the boys set to work upon it, Tom recounted (and adorned) his
  3960  adventures. They were a vain and boastful company of heroes when the
  3961  tale was done. Then Tom hid himself away in a shady nook to sleep till
  3962  noon, and the other pirates got ready to fish and explore.
  3963  
  3964  
  3965  
  3966  CHAPTER XVI
  3967  
  3968  AFTER dinner all the gang turned out to hunt for turtle eggs on the
  3969  bar. They went about poking sticks into the sand, and when they found a
  3970  soft place they went down on their knees and dug with their hands.
  3971  Sometimes they would take fifty or sixty eggs out of one hole. They
  3972  were perfectly round white things a trifle smaller than an English
  3973  walnut. They had a famous fried-egg feast that night, and another on
  3974  Friday morning.
  3975  
  3976  After breakfast they went whooping and prancing out on the bar, and
  3977  chased each other round and round, shedding clothes as they went, until
  3978  they were naked, and then continued the frolic far away up the shoal
  3979  water of the bar, against the stiff current, which latter tripped their
  3980  legs from under them from time to time and greatly increased the fun.
  3981  And now and then they stooped in a group and splashed water in each
  3982  other's faces with their palms, gradually approaching each other, with
  3983  averted faces to avoid the strangling sprays, and finally gripping and
  3984  struggling till the best man ducked his neighbor, and then they all
  3985  went under in a tangle of white legs and arms and came up blowing,
  3986  sputtering, laughing, and gasping for breath at one and the same time.
  3987  
  3988  When they were well exhausted, they would run out and sprawl on the
  3989  dry, hot sand, and lie there and cover themselves up with it, and by
  3990  and by break for the water again and go through the original
  3991  performance once more. Finally it occurred to them that their naked
  3992  skin represented flesh-colored "tights" very fairly; so they drew a
  3993  ring in the sand and had a circus--with three clowns in it, for none
  3994  would yield this proudest post to his neighbor.
  3995  
  3996  Next they got their marbles and played "knucks" and "ring-taw" and
  3997  "keeps" till that amusement grew stale. Then Joe and Huck had another
  3998  swim, but Tom would not venture, because he found that in kicking off
  3999  his trousers he had kicked his string of rattlesnake rattles off his
  4000  ankle, and he wondered how he had escaped cramp so long without the
  4001  protection of this mysterious charm. He did not venture again until he
  4002  had found it, and by that time the other boys were tired and ready to
  4003  rest. They gradually wandered apart, dropped into the "dumps," and fell
  4004  to gazing longingly across the wide river to where the village lay
  4005  drowsing in the sun. Tom found himself writing "BECKY" in the sand with
  4006  his big toe; he scratched it out, and was angry with himself for his
  4007  weakness. But he wrote it again, nevertheless; he could not help it. He
  4008  erased it once more and then took himself out of temptation by driving
  4009  the other boys together and joining them.
  4010  
  4011  But Joe's spirits had gone down almost beyond resurrection. He was so
  4012  homesick that he could hardly endure the misery of it. The tears lay
  4013  very near the surface. Huck was melancholy, too. Tom was downhearted,
  4014  but tried hard not to show it. He had a secret which he was not ready
  4015  to tell, yet, but if this mutinous depression was not broken up soon,
  4016  he would have to bring it out. He said, with a great show of
  4017  cheerfulness:
  4018  
  4019  "I bet there's been pirates on this island before, boys. We'll explore
  4020  it again. They've hid treasures here somewhere. How'd you feel to light
  4021  on a rotten chest full of gold and silver--hey?"
  4022  
  4023  But it roused only faint enthusiasm, which faded out, with no reply.
  4024  Tom tried one or two other seductions; but they failed, too. It was
  4025  discouraging work. Joe sat poking up the sand with a stick and looking
  4026  very gloomy. Finally he said:
  4027  
  4028  "Oh, boys, let's give it up. I want to go home. It's so lonesome."
  4029  
  4030  "Oh no, Joe, you'll feel better by and by," said Tom. "Just think of
  4031  the fishing that's here."
  4032  
  4033  "I don't care for fishing. I want to go home."
  4034  
  4035  "But, Joe, there ain't such another swimming-place anywhere."
  4036  
  4037  "Swimming's no good. I don't seem to care for it, somehow, when there
  4038  ain't anybody to say I sha'n't go in. I mean to go home."
  4039  
  4040  "Oh, shucks! Baby! You want to see your mother, I reckon."
  4041  
  4042  "Yes, I DO want to see my mother--and you would, too, if you had one.
  4043  I ain't any more baby than you are." And Joe snuffled a little.
  4044  
  4045  "Well, we'll let the cry-baby go home to his mother, won't we, Huck?
  4046  Poor thing--does it want to see its mother? And so it shall. You like
  4047  it here, don't you, Huck? We'll stay, won't we?"
  4048  
  4049  Huck said, "Y-e-s"--without any heart in it.
  4050  
  4051  "I'll never speak to you again as long as I live," said Joe, rising.
  4052  "There now!" And he moved moodily away and began to dress himself.
  4053  
  4054  "Who cares!" said Tom. "Nobody wants you to. Go 'long home and get
  4055  laughed at. Oh, you're a nice pirate. Huck and me ain't cry-babies.
  4056  We'll stay, won't we, Huck? Let him go if he wants to. I reckon we can
  4057  get along without him, per'aps."
  4058  
  4059  But Tom was uneasy, nevertheless, and was alarmed to see Joe go
  4060  sullenly on with his dressing. And then it was discomforting to see
  4061  Huck eying Joe's preparations so wistfully, and keeping up such an
  4062  ominous silence. Presently, without a parting word, Joe began to wade
  4063  off toward the Illinois shore. Tom's heart began to sink. He glanced at
  4064  Huck. Huck could not bear the look, and dropped his eyes. Then he said:
  4065  
  4066  "I want to go, too, Tom. It was getting so lonesome anyway, and now
  4067  it'll be worse. Let's us go, too, Tom."
  4068  
  4069  "I won't! You can all go, if you want to. I mean to stay."
  4070  
  4071  "Tom, I better go."
  4072  
  4073  "Well, go 'long--who's hendering you."
  4074  
  4075  Huck began to pick up his scattered clothes. He said:
  4076  
  4077  "Tom, I wisht you'd come, too. Now you think it over. We'll wait for
  4078  you when we get to shore."
  4079  
  4080  "Well, you'll wait a blame long time, that's all."
  4081  
  4082  Huck started sorrowfully away, and Tom stood looking after him, with a
  4083  strong desire tugging at his heart to yield his pride and go along too.
  4084  He hoped the boys would stop, but they still waded slowly on. It
  4085  suddenly dawned on Tom that it was become very lonely and still. He
  4086  made one final struggle with his pride, and then darted after his
  4087  comrades, yelling:
  4088  
  4089  "Wait! Wait! I want to tell you something!"
  4090  
  4091  They presently stopped and turned around. When he got to where they
  4092  were, he began unfolding his secret, and they listened moodily till at
  4093  last they saw the "point" he was driving at, and then they set up a
  4094  war-whoop of applause and said it was "splendid!" and said if he had
  4095  told them at first, they wouldn't have started away. He made a plausible
  4096  excuse; but his real reason had been the fear that not even the secret
  4097  would keep them with him any very great length of time, and so he had
  4098  meant to hold it in reserve as a last seduction.
  4099  
  4100  The lads came gayly back and went at their sports again with a will,
  4101  chattering all the time about Tom's stupendous plan and admiring the
  4102  genius of it. After a dainty egg and fish dinner, Tom said he wanted to
  4103  learn to smoke, now. Joe caught at the idea and said he would like to
  4104  try, too. So Huck made pipes and filled them. These novices had never
  4105  smoked anything before but cigars made of grape-vine, and they "bit"
  4106  the tongue, and were not considered manly anyway.
  4107  
  4108  Now they stretched themselves out on their elbows and began to puff,
  4109  charily, and with slender confidence. The smoke had an unpleasant
  4110  taste, and they gagged a little, but Tom said:
  4111  
  4112  "Why, it's just as easy! If I'd a knowed this was all, I'd a learnt
  4113  long ago."
  4114  
  4115  "So would I," said Joe. "It's just nothing."
  4116  
  4117  "Why, many a time I've looked at people smoking, and thought well I
  4118  wish I could do that; but I never thought I could," said Tom.
  4119  
  4120  "That's just the way with me, hain't it, Huck? You've heard me talk
  4121  just that way--haven't you, Huck? I'll leave it to Huck if I haven't."
  4122  
  4123  "Yes--heaps of times," said Huck.
  4124  
  4125  "Well, I have too," said Tom; "oh, hundreds of times. Once down by the
  4126  slaughter-house. Don't you remember, Huck? Bob Tanner was there, and
  4127  Johnny Miller, and Jeff Thatcher, when I said it. Don't you remember,
  4128  Huck, 'bout me saying that?"
  4129  
  4130  "Yes, that's so," said Huck. "That was the day after I lost a white
  4131  alley. No, 'twas the day before."
  4132  
  4133  "There--I told you so," said Tom. "Huck recollects it."
  4134  
  4135  "I bleeve I could smoke this pipe all day," said Joe. "I don't feel
  4136  sick."
  4137  
  4138  "Neither do I," said Tom. "I could smoke it all day. But I bet you
  4139  Jeff Thatcher couldn't."
  4140  
  4141  "Jeff Thatcher! Why, he'd keel over just with two draws. Just let him
  4142  try it once. HE'D see!"
  4143  
  4144  "I bet he would. And Johnny Miller--I wish could see Johnny Miller
  4145  tackle it once."
  4146  
  4147  "Oh, don't I!" said Joe. "Why, I bet you Johnny Miller couldn't any
  4148  more do this than nothing. Just one little snifter would fetch HIM."
  4149  
  4150  "'Deed it would, Joe. Say--I wish the boys could see us now."
  4151  
  4152  "So do I."
  4153  
  4154  "Say--boys, don't say anything about it, and some time when they're
  4155  around, I'll come up to you and say, 'Joe, got a pipe? I want a smoke.'
  4156  And you'll say, kind of careless like, as if it warn't anything, you'll
  4157  say, 'Yes, I got my OLD pipe, and another one, but my tobacker ain't
  4158  very good.' And I'll say, 'Oh, that's all right, if it's STRONG
  4159  enough.' And then you'll out with the pipes, and we'll light up just as
  4160  ca'm, and then just see 'em look!"
  4161  
  4162  "By jings, that'll be gay, Tom! I wish it was NOW!"
  4163  
  4164  "So do I! And when we tell 'em we learned when we was off pirating,
  4165  won't they wish they'd been along?"
  4166  
  4167  "Oh, I reckon not! I'll just BET they will!"
  4168  
  4169  So the talk ran on. But presently it began to flag a trifle, and grow
  4170  disjointed. The silences widened; the expectoration marvellously
  4171  increased. Every pore inside the boys' cheeks became a spouting
  4172  fountain; they could scarcely bail out the cellars under their tongues
  4173  fast enough to prevent an inundation; little overflowings down their
  4174  throats occurred in spite of all they could do, and sudden retchings
  4175  followed every time. Both boys were looking very pale and miserable,
  4176  now. Joe's pipe dropped from his nerveless fingers. Tom's followed.
  4177  Both fountains were going furiously and both pumps bailing with might
  4178  and main. Joe said feebly:
  4179  
  4180  "I've lost my knife. I reckon I better go and find it."
  4181  
  4182  Tom said, with quivering lips and halting utterance:
  4183  
  4184  "I'll help you. You go over that way and I'll hunt around by the
  4185  spring. No, you needn't come, Huck--we can find it."
  4186  
  4187  So Huck sat down again, and waited an hour. Then he found it lonesome,
  4188  and went to find his comrades. They were wide apart in the woods, both
  4189  very pale, both fast asleep. But something informed him that if they
  4190  had had any trouble they had got rid of it.
  4191  
  4192  They were not talkative at supper that night. They had a humble look,
  4193  and when Huck prepared his pipe after the meal and was going to prepare
  4194  theirs, they said no, they were not feeling very well--something they
  4195  ate at dinner had disagreed with them.
  4196  
  4197  About midnight Joe awoke, and called the boys. There was a brooding
  4198  oppressiveness in the air that seemed to bode something. The boys
  4199  huddled themselves together and sought the friendly companionship of
  4200  the fire, though the dull dead heat of the breathless atmosphere was
  4201  stifling. They sat still, intent and waiting. The solemn hush
  4202  continued. Beyond the light of the fire everything was swallowed up in
  4203  the blackness of darkness. Presently there came a quivering glow that
  4204  vaguely revealed the foliage for a moment and then vanished. By and by
  4205  another came, a little stronger. Then another. Then a faint moan came
  4206  sighing through the branches of the forest and the boys felt a fleeting
  4207  breath upon their cheeks, and shuddered with the fancy that the Spirit
  4208  of the Night had gone by. There was a pause. Now a weird flash turned
  4209  night into day and showed every little grass-blade, separate and
  4210  distinct, that grew about their feet. And it showed three white,
  4211  startled faces, too. A deep peal of thunder went rolling and tumbling
  4212  down the heavens and lost itself in sullen rumblings in the distance. A
  4213  sweep of chilly air passed by, rustling all the leaves and snowing the
  4214  flaky ashes broadcast about the fire. Another fierce glare lit up the
  4215  forest and an instant crash followed that seemed to rend the tree-tops
  4216  right over the boys' heads. They clung together in terror, in the thick
  4217  gloom that followed. A few big rain-drops fell pattering upon the
  4218  leaves.
  4219  
  4220  "Quick! boys, go for the tent!" exclaimed Tom.
  4221  
  4222  They sprang away, stumbling over roots and among vines in the dark, no
  4223  two plunging in the same direction. A furious blast roared through the
  4224  trees, making everything sing as it went. One blinding flash after
  4225  another came, and peal on peal of deafening thunder. And now a
  4226  drenching rain poured down and the rising hurricane drove it in sheets
  4227  along the ground. The boys cried out to each other, but the roaring
  4228  wind and the booming thunder-blasts drowned their voices utterly.
  4229  However, one by one they straggled in at last and took shelter under
  4230  the tent, cold, scared, and streaming with water; but to have company
  4231  in misery seemed something to be grateful for. They could not talk, the
  4232  old sail flapped so furiously, even if the other noises would have
  4233  allowed them. The tempest rose higher and higher, and presently the
  4234  sail tore loose from its fastenings and went winging away on the blast.
  4235  The boys seized each others' hands and fled, with many tumblings and
  4236  bruises, to the shelter of a great oak that stood upon the river-bank.
  4237  Now the battle was at its highest. Under the ceaseless conflagration of
  4238  lightning that flamed in the skies, everything below stood out in
  4239  clean-cut and shadowless distinctness: the bending trees, the billowy
  4240  river, white with foam, the driving spray of spume-flakes, the dim
  4241  outlines of the high bluffs on the other side, glimpsed through the
  4242  drifting cloud-rack and the slanting veil of rain. Every little while
  4243  some giant tree yielded the fight and fell crashing through the younger
  4244  growth; and the unflagging thunder-peals came now in ear-splitting
  4245  explosive bursts, keen and sharp, and unspeakably appalling. The storm
  4246  culminated in one matchless effort that seemed likely to tear the island
  4247  to pieces, burn it up, drown it to the tree-tops, blow it away, and
  4248  deafen every creature in it, all at one and the same moment. It was a
  4249  wild night for homeless young heads to be out in.
  4250  
  4251  But at last the battle was done, and the forces retired with weaker
  4252  and weaker threatenings and grumblings, and peace resumed her sway. The
  4253  boys went back to camp, a good deal awed; but they found there was
  4254  still something to be thankful for, because the great sycamore, the
  4255  shelter of their beds, was a ruin, now, blasted by the lightnings, and
  4256  they were not under it when the catastrophe happened.
  4257  
  4258  Everything in camp was drenched, the camp-fire as well; for they were
  4259  but heedless lads, like their generation, and had made no provision
  4260  against rain. Here was matter for dismay, for they were soaked through
  4261  and chilled. They were eloquent in their distress; but they presently
  4262  discovered that the fire had eaten so far up under the great log it had
  4263  been built against (where it curved upward and separated itself from
  4264  the ground), that a handbreadth or so of it had escaped wetting; so
  4265  they patiently wrought until, with shreds and bark gathered from the
  4266  under sides of sheltered logs, they coaxed the fire to burn again. Then
  4267  they piled on great dead boughs till they had a roaring furnace, and
  4268  were glad-hearted once more. They dried their boiled ham and had a
  4269  feast, and after that they sat by the fire and expanded and glorified
  4270  their midnight adventure until morning, for there was not a dry spot to
  4271  sleep on, anywhere around.
  4272  
  4273  As the sun began to steal in upon the boys, drowsiness came over them,
  4274  and they went out on the sandbar and lay down to sleep. They got
  4275  scorched out by and by, and drearily set about getting breakfast. After
  4276  the meal they felt rusty, and stiff-jointed, and a little homesick once
  4277  more. Tom saw the signs, and fell to cheering up the pirates as well as
  4278  he could. But they cared nothing for marbles, or circus, or swimming,
  4279  or anything. He reminded them of the imposing secret, and raised a ray
  4280  of cheer. While it lasted, he got them interested in a new device. This
  4281  was to knock off being pirates, for a while, and be Indians for a
  4282  change. They were attracted by this idea; so it was not long before
  4283  they were stripped, and striped from head to heel with black mud, like
  4284  so many zebras--all of them chiefs, of course--and then they went
  4285  tearing through the woods to attack an English settlement.
  4286  
  4287  By and by they separated into three hostile tribes, and darted upon
  4288  each other from ambush with dreadful war-whoops, and killed and scalped
  4289  each other by thousands. It was a gory day. Consequently it was an
  4290  extremely satisfactory one.
  4291  
  4292  They assembled in camp toward supper-time, hungry and happy; but now a
  4293  difficulty arose--hostile Indians could not break the bread of
  4294  hospitality together without first making peace, and this was a simple
  4295  impossibility without smoking a pipe of peace. There was no other
  4296  process that ever they had heard of. Two of the savages almost wished
  4297  they had remained pirates. However, there was no other way; so with
  4298  such show of cheerfulness as they could muster they called for the pipe
  4299  and took their whiff as it passed, in due form.
  4300  
  4301  And behold, they were glad they had gone into savagery, for they had
  4302  gained something; they found that they could now smoke a little without
  4303  having to go and hunt for a lost knife; they did not get sick enough to
  4304  be seriously uncomfortable. They were not likely to fool away this high
  4305  promise for lack of effort. No, they practised cautiously, after
  4306  supper, with right fair success, and so they spent a jubilant evening.
  4307  They were prouder and happier in their new acquirement than they would
  4308  have been in the scalping and skinning of the Six Nations. We will
  4309  leave them to smoke and chatter and brag, since we have no further use
  4310  for them at present.
  4311  
  4312  
  4313  
  4314  CHAPTER XVII
  4315  
  4316  BUT there was no hilarity in the little town that same tranquil
  4317  Saturday afternoon. The Harpers, and Aunt Polly's family, were being
  4318  put into mourning, with great grief and many tears. An unusual quiet
  4319  possessed the village, although it was ordinarily quiet enough, in all
  4320  conscience. The villagers conducted their concerns with an absent air,
  4321  and talked little; but they sighed often. The Saturday holiday seemed a
  4322  burden to the children. They had no heart in their sports, and
  4323  gradually gave them up.
  4324  
  4325  In the afternoon Becky Thatcher found herself moping about the
  4326  deserted schoolhouse yard, and feeling very melancholy. But she found
  4327  nothing there to comfort her. She soliloquized:
  4328  
  4329  "Oh, if I only had a brass andiron-knob again! But I haven't got
  4330  anything now to remember him by." And she choked back a little sob.
  4331  
  4332  Presently she stopped, and said to herself:
  4333  
  4334  "It was right here. Oh, if it was to do over again, I wouldn't say
  4335  that--I wouldn't say it for the whole world. But he's gone now; I'll
  4336  never, never, never see him any more."
  4337  
  4338  This thought broke her down, and she wandered away, with tears rolling
  4339  down her cheeks. Then quite a group of boys and girls--playmates of
  4340  Tom's and Joe's--came by, and stood looking over the paling fence and
  4341  talking in reverent tones of how Tom did so-and-so the last time they
  4342  saw him, and how Joe said this and that small trifle (pregnant with
  4343  awful prophecy, as they could easily see now!)--and each speaker
  4344  pointed out the exact spot where the lost lads stood at the time, and
  4345  then added something like "and I was a-standing just so--just as I am
  4346  now, and as if you was him--I was as close as that--and he smiled, just
  4347  this way--and then something seemed to go all over me, like--awful, you
  4348  know--and I never thought what it meant, of course, but I can see now!"
  4349  
  4350  Then there was a dispute about who saw the dead boys last in life, and
  4351  many claimed that dismal distinction, and offered evidences, more or
  4352  less tampered with by the witness; and when it was ultimately decided
  4353  who DID see the departed last, and exchanged the last words with them,
  4354  the lucky parties took upon themselves a sort of sacred importance, and
  4355  were gaped at and envied by all the rest. One poor chap, who had no
  4356  other grandeur to offer, said with tolerably manifest pride in the
  4357  remembrance:
  4358  
  4359  "Well, Tom Sawyer he licked me once."
  4360  
  4361  But that bid for glory was a failure. Most of the boys could say that,
  4362  and so that cheapened the distinction too much. The group loitered
  4363  away, still recalling memories of the lost heroes, in awed voices.
  4364  
  4365  When the Sunday-school hour was finished, the next morning, the bell
  4366  began to toll, instead of ringing in the usual way. It was a very still
  4367  Sabbath, and the mournful sound seemed in keeping with the musing hush
  4368  that lay upon nature. The villagers began to gather, loitering a moment
  4369  in the vestibule to converse in whispers about the sad event. But there
  4370  was no whispering in the house; only the funereal rustling of dresses
  4371  as the women gathered to their seats disturbed the silence there. None
  4372  could remember when the little church had been so full before. There
  4373  was finally a waiting pause, an expectant dumbness, and then Aunt Polly
  4374  entered, followed by Sid and Mary, and they by the Harper family, all
  4375  in deep black, and the whole congregation, the old minister as well,
  4376  rose reverently and stood until the mourners were seated in the front
  4377  pew. There was another communing silence, broken at intervals by
  4378  muffled sobs, and then the minister spread his hands abroad and prayed.
  4379  A moving hymn was sung, and the text followed: "I am the Resurrection
  4380  and the Life."
  4381  
  4382  As the service proceeded, the clergyman drew such pictures of the
  4383  graces, the winning ways, and the rare promise of the lost lads that
  4384  every soul there, thinking he recognized these pictures, felt a pang in
  4385  remembering that he had persistently blinded himself to them always
  4386  before, and had as persistently seen only faults and flaws in the poor
  4387  boys. The minister related many a touching incident in the lives of the
  4388  departed, too, which illustrated their sweet, generous natures, and the
  4389  people could easily see, now, how noble and beautiful those episodes
  4390  were, and remembered with grief that at the time they occurred they had
  4391  seemed rank rascalities, well deserving of the cowhide. The
  4392  congregation became more and more moved, as the pathetic tale went on,
  4393  till at last the whole company broke down and joined the weeping
  4394  mourners in a chorus of anguished sobs, the preacher himself giving way
  4395  to his feelings, and crying in the pulpit.
  4396  
  4397  There was a rustle in the gallery, which nobody noticed; a moment
  4398  later the church door creaked; the minister raised his streaming eyes
  4399  above his handkerchief, and stood transfixed! First one and then
  4400  another pair of eyes followed the minister's, and then almost with one
  4401  impulse the congregation rose and stared while the three dead boys came
  4402  marching up the aisle, Tom in the lead, Joe next, and Huck, a ruin of
  4403  drooping rags, sneaking sheepishly in the rear! They had been hid in
  4404  the unused gallery listening to their own funeral sermon!
  4405  
  4406  Aunt Polly, Mary, and the Harpers threw themselves upon their restored
  4407  ones, smothered them with kisses and poured out thanksgivings, while
  4408  poor Huck stood abashed and uncomfortable, not knowing exactly what to
  4409  do or where to hide from so many unwelcoming eyes. He wavered, and
  4410  started to slink away, but Tom seized him and said:
  4411  
  4412  "Aunt Polly, it ain't fair. Somebody's got to be glad to see Huck."
  4413  
  4414  "And so they shall. I'm glad to see him, poor motherless thing!" And
  4415  the loving attentions Aunt Polly lavished upon him were the one thing
  4416  capable of making him more uncomfortable than he was before.
  4417  
  4418  Suddenly the minister shouted at the top of his voice: "Praise God
  4419  from whom all blessings flow--SING!--and put your hearts in it!"
  4420  
  4421  And they did. Old Hundred swelled up with a triumphant burst, and
  4422  while it shook the rafters Tom Sawyer the Pirate looked around upon the
  4423  envying juveniles about him and confessed in his heart that this was
  4424  the proudest moment of his life.
  4425  
  4426  As the "sold" congregation trooped out they said they would almost be
  4427  willing to be made ridiculous again to hear Old Hundred sung like that
  4428  once more.
  4429  
  4430  Tom got more cuffs and kisses that day--according to Aunt Polly's
  4431  varying moods--than he had earned before in a year; and he hardly knew
  4432  which expressed the most gratefulness to God and affection for himself.
  4433  
  4434  
  4435  
  4436  CHAPTER XVIII
  4437  
  4438  THAT was Tom's great secret--the scheme to return home with his
  4439  brother pirates and attend their own funerals. They had paddled over to
  4440  the Missouri shore on a log, at dusk on Saturday, landing five or six
  4441  miles below the village; they had slept in the woods at the edge of the
  4442  town till nearly daylight, and had then crept through back lanes and
  4443  alleys and finished their sleep in the gallery of the church among a
  4444  chaos of invalided benches.
  4445  
  4446  At breakfast, Monday morning, Aunt Polly and Mary were very loving to
  4447  Tom, and very attentive to his wants. There was an unusual amount of
  4448  talk. In the course of it Aunt Polly said:
  4449  
  4450  "Well, I don't say it wasn't a fine joke, Tom, to keep everybody
  4451  suffering 'most a week so you boys had a good time, but it is a pity
  4452  you could be so hard-hearted as to let me suffer so. If you could come
  4453  over on a log to go to your funeral, you could have come over and give
  4454  me a hint some way that you warn't dead, but only run off."
  4455  
  4456  "Yes, you could have done that, Tom," said Mary; "and I believe you
  4457  would if you had thought of it."
  4458  
  4459  "Would you, Tom?" said Aunt Polly, her face lighting wistfully. "Say,
  4460  now, would you, if you'd thought of it?"
  4461  
  4462  "I--well, I don't know. 'Twould 'a' spoiled everything."
  4463  
  4464  "Tom, I hoped you loved me that much," said Aunt Polly, with a grieved
  4465  tone that discomforted the boy. "It would have been something if you'd
  4466  cared enough to THINK of it, even if you didn't DO it."
  4467  
  4468  "Now, auntie, that ain't any harm," pleaded Mary; "it's only Tom's
  4469  giddy way--he is always in such a rush that he never thinks of
  4470  anything."
  4471  
  4472  "More's the pity. Sid would have thought. And Sid would have come and
  4473  DONE it, too. Tom, you'll look back, some day, when it's too late, and
  4474  wish you'd cared a little more for me when it would have cost you so
  4475  little."
  4476  
  4477  "Now, auntie, you know I do care for you," said Tom.
  4478  
  4479  "I'd know it better if you acted more like it."
  4480  
  4481  "I wish now I'd thought," said Tom, with a repentant tone; "but I
  4482  dreamt about you, anyway. That's something, ain't it?"
  4483  
  4484  "It ain't much--a cat does that much--but it's better than nothing.
  4485  What did you dream?"
  4486  
  4487  "Why, Wednesday night I dreamt that you was sitting over there by the
  4488  bed, and Sid was sitting by the woodbox, and Mary next to him."
  4489  
  4490  "Well, so we did. So we always do. I'm glad your dreams could take
  4491  even that much trouble about us."
  4492  
  4493  "And I dreamt that Joe Harper's mother was here."
  4494  
  4495  "Why, she was here! Did you dream any more?"
  4496  
  4497  "Oh, lots. But it's so dim, now."
  4498  
  4499  "Well, try to recollect--can't you?"
  4500  
  4501  "Somehow it seems to me that the wind--the wind blowed the--the--"
  4502  
  4503  "Try harder, Tom! The wind did blow something. Come!"
  4504  
  4505  Tom pressed his fingers on his forehead an anxious minute, and then
  4506  said:
  4507  
  4508  "I've got it now! I've got it now! It blowed the candle!"
  4509  
  4510  "Mercy on us! Go on, Tom--go on!"
  4511  
  4512  "And it seems to me that you said, 'Why, I believe that that door--'"
  4513  
  4514  "Go ON, Tom!"
  4515  
  4516  "Just let me study a moment--just a moment. Oh, yes--you said you
  4517  believed the door was open."
  4518  
  4519  "As I'm sitting here, I did! Didn't I, Mary! Go on!"
  4520  
  4521  "And then--and then--well I won't be certain, but it seems like as if
  4522  you made Sid go and--and--"
  4523  
  4524  "Well? Well? What did I make him do, Tom? What did I make him do?"
  4525  
  4526  "You made him--you--Oh, you made him shut it."
  4527  
  4528  "Well, for the land's sake! I never heard the beat of that in all my
  4529  days! Don't tell ME there ain't anything in dreams, any more. Sereny
  4530  Harper shall know of this before I'm an hour older. I'd like to see her
  4531  get around THIS with her rubbage 'bout superstition. Go on, Tom!"
  4532  
  4533  "Oh, it's all getting just as bright as day, now. Next you said I
  4534  warn't BAD, only mischeevous and harum-scarum, and not any more
  4535  responsible than--than--I think it was a colt, or something."
  4536  
  4537  "And so it was! Well, goodness gracious! Go on, Tom!"
  4538  
  4539  "And then you began to cry."
  4540  
  4541  "So I did. So I did. Not the first time, neither. And then--"
  4542  
  4543  "Then Mrs. Harper she began to cry, and said Joe was just the same,
  4544  and she wished she hadn't whipped him for taking cream when she'd
  4545  throwed it out her own self--"
  4546  
  4547  "Tom! The sperrit was upon you! You was a prophesying--that's what you
  4548  was doing! Land alive, go on, Tom!"
  4549  
  4550  "Then Sid he said--he said--"
  4551  
  4552  "I don't think I said anything," said Sid.
  4553  
  4554  "Yes you did, Sid," said Mary.
  4555  
  4556  "Shut your heads and let Tom go on! What did he say, Tom?"
  4557  
  4558  "He said--I THINK he said he hoped I was better off where I was gone
  4559  to, but if I'd been better sometimes--"
  4560  
  4561  "THERE, d'you hear that! It was his very words!"
  4562  
  4563  "And you shut him up sharp."
  4564  
  4565  "I lay I did! There must 'a' been an angel there. There WAS an angel
  4566  there, somewheres!"
  4567  
  4568  "And Mrs. Harper told about Joe scaring her with a firecracker, and
  4569  you told about Peter and the Painkiller--"
  4570  
  4571  "Just as true as I live!"
  4572  
  4573  "And then there was a whole lot of talk 'bout dragging the river for
  4574  us, and 'bout having the funeral Sunday, and then you and old Miss
  4575  Harper hugged and cried, and she went."
  4576  
  4577  "It happened just so! It happened just so, as sure as I'm a-sitting in
  4578  these very tracks. Tom, you couldn't told it more like if you'd 'a'
  4579  seen it! And then what? Go on, Tom!"
  4580  
  4581  "Then I thought you prayed for me--and I could see you and hear every
  4582  word you said. And you went to bed, and I was so sorry that I took and
  4583  wrote on a piece of sycamore bark, 'We ain't dead--we are only off
  4584  being pirates,' and put it on the table by the candle; and then you
  4585  looked so good, laying there asleep, that I thought I went and leaned
  4586  over and kissed you on the lips."
  4587  
  4588  "Did you, Tom, DID you! I just forgive you everything for that!" And
  4589  she seized the boy in a crushing embrace that made him feel like the
  4590  guiltiest of villains.
  4591  
  4592  "It was very kind, even though it was only a--dream," Sid soliloquized
  4593  just audibly.
  4594  
  4595  "Shut up, Sid! A body does just the same in a dream as he'd do if he
  4596  was awake. Here's a big Milum apple I've been saving for you, Tom, if
  4597  you was ever found again--now go 'long to school. I'm thankful to the
  4598  good God and Father of us all I've got you back, that's long-suffering
  4599  and merciful to them that believe on Him and keep His word, though
  4600  goodness knows I'm unworthy of it, but if only the worthy ones got His
  4601  blessings and had His hand to help them over the rough places, there's
  4602  few enough would smile here or ever enter into His rest when the long
  4603  night comes. Go 'long Sid, Mary, Tom--take yourselves off--you've
  4604  hendered me long enough."
  4605  
  4606  The children left for school, and the old lady to call on Mrs. Harper
  4607  and vanquish her realism with Tom's marvellous dream. Sid had better
  4608  judgment than to utter the thought that was in his mind as he left the
  4609  house. It was this: "Pretty thin--as long a dream as that, without any
  4610  mistakes in it!"
  4611  
  4612  What a hero Tom was become, now! He did not go skipping and prancing,
  4613  but moved with a dignified swagger as became a pirate who felt that the
  4614  public eye was on him. And indeed it was; he tried not to seem to see
  4615  the looks or hear the remarks as he passed along, but they were food
  4616  and drink to him. Smaller boys than himself flocked at his heels, as
  4617  proud to be seen with him, and tolerated by him, as if he had been the
  4618  drummer at the head of a procession or the elephant leading a menagerie
  4619  into town. Boys of his own size pretended not to know he had been away
  4620  at all; but they were consuming with envy, nevertheless. They would
  4621  have given anything to have that swarthy suntanned skin of his, and his
  4622  glittering notoriety; and Tom would not have parted with either for a
  4623  circus.
  4624  
  4625  At school the children made so much of him and of Joe, and delivered
  4626  such eloquent admiration from their eyes, that the two heroes were not
  4627  long in becoming insufferably "stuck-up." They began to tell their
  4628  adventures to hungry listeners--but they only began; it was not a thing
  4629  likely to have an end, with imaginations like theirs to furnish
  4630  material. And finally, when they got out their pipes and went serenely
  4631  puffing around, the very summit of glory was reached.
  4632  
  4633  Tom decided that he could be independent of Becky Thatcher now. Glory
  4634  was sufficient. He would live for glory. Now that he was distinguished,
  4635  maybe she would be wanting to "make up." Well, let her--she should see
  4636  that he could be as indifferent as some other people. Presently she
  4637  arrived. Tom pretended not to see her. He moved away and joined a group
  4638  of boys and girls and began to talk. Soon he observed that she was
  4639  tripping gayly back and forth with flushed face and dancing eyes,
  4640  pretending to be busy chasing schoolmates, and screaming with laughter
  4641  when she made a capture; but he noticed that she always made her
  4642  captures in his vicinity, and that she seemed to cast a conscious eye
  4643  in his direction at such times, too. It gratified all the vicious
  4644  vanity that was in him; and so, instead of winning him, it only "set
  4645  him up" the more and made him the more diligent to avoid betraying that
  4646  he knew she was about. Presently she gave over skylarking, and moved
  4647  irresolutely about, sighing once or twice and glancing furtively and
  4648  wistfully toward Tom. Then she observed that now Tom was talking more
  4649  particularly to Amy Lawrence than to any one else. She felt a sharp
  4650  pang and grew disturbed and uneasy at once. She tried to go away, but
  4651  her feet were treacherous, and carried her to the group instead. She
  4652  said to a girl almost at Tom's elbow--with sham vivacity:
  4653  
  4654  "Why, Mary Austin! you bad girl, why didn't you come to Sunday-school?"
  4655  
  4656  "I did come--didn't you see me?"
  4657  
  4658  "Why, no! Did you? Where did you sit?"
  4659  
  4660  "I was in Miss Peters' class, where I always go. I saw YOU."
  4661  
  4662  "Did you? Why, it's funny I didn't see you. I wanted to tell you about
  4663  the picnic."
  4664  
  4665  "Oh, that's jolly. Who's going to give it?"
  4666  
  4667  "My ma's going to let me have one."
  4668  
  4669  "Oh, goody; I hope she'll let ME come."
  4670  
  4671  "Well, she will. The picnic's for me. She'll let anybody come that I
  4672  want, and I want you."
  4673  
  4674  "That's ever so nice. When is it going to be?"
  4675  
  4676  "By and by. Maybe about vacation."
  4677  
  4678  "Oh, won't it be fun! You going to have all the girls and boys?"
  4679  
  4680  "Yes, every one that's friends to me--or wants to be"; and she glanced
  4681  ever so furtively at Tom, but he talked right along to Amy Lawrence
  4682  about the terrible storm on the island, and how the lightning tore the
  4683  great sycamore tree "all to flinders" while he was "standing within
  4684  three feet of it."
  4685  
  4686  "Oh, may I come?" said Grace Miller.
  4687  
  4688  "Yes."
  4689  
  4690  "And me?" said Sally Rogers.
  4691  
  4692  "Yes."
  4693  
  4694  "And me, too?" said Susy Harper. "And Joe?"
  4695  
  4696  "Yes."
  4697  
  4698  And so on, with clapping of joyful hands till all the group had begged
  4699  for invitations but Tom and Amy. Then Tom turned coolly away, still
  4700  talking, and took Amy with him. Becky's lips trembled and the tears
  4701  came to her eyes; she hid these signs with a forced gayety and went on
  4702  chattering, but the life had gone out of the picnic, now, and out of
  4703  everything else; she got away as soon as she could and hid herself and
  4704  had what her sex call "a good cry." Then she sat moody, with wounded
  4705  pride, till the bell rang. She roused up, now, with a vindictive cast
  4706  in her eye, and gave her plaited tails a shake and said she knew what
  4707  SHE'D do.
  4708  
  4709  At recess Tom continued his flirtation with Amy with jubilant
  4710  self-satisfaction. And he kept drifting about to find Becky and lacerate
  4711  her with the performance. At last he spied her, but there was a sudden
  4712  falling of his mercury. She was sitting cosily on a little bench behind
  4713  the schoolhouse looking at a picture-book with Alfred Temple--and so
  4714  absorbed were they, and their heads so close together over the book,
  4715  that they did not seem to be conscious of anything in the world besides.
  4716  Jealousy ran red-hot through Tom's veins. He began to hate himself for
  4717  throwing away the chance Becky had offered for a reconciliation. He
  4718  called himself a fool, and all the hard names he could think of. He
  4719  wanted to cry with vexation. Amy chatted happily along, as they walked,
  4720  for her heart was singing, but Tom's tongue had lost its function. He
  4721  did not hear what Amy was saying, and whenever she paused expectantly he
  4722  could only stammer an awkward assent, which was as often misplaced as
  4723  otherwise. He kept drifting to the rear of the schoolhouse, again and
  4724  again, to sear his eyeballs with the hateful spectacle there. He could
  4725  not help it. And it maddened him to see, as he thought he saw, that
  4726  Becky Thatcher never once suspected that he was even in the land of the
  4727  living. But she did see, nevertheless; and she knew she was winning her
  4728  fight, too, and was glad to see him suffer as she had suffered.
  4729  
  4730  Amy's happy prattle became intolerable. Tom hinted at things he had to
  4731  attend to; things that must be done; and time was fleeting. But in
  4732  vain--the girl chirped on. Tom thought, "Oh, hang her, ain't I ever
  4733  going to get rid of her?" At last he must be attending to those
  4734  things--and she said artlessly that she would be "around" when school
  4735  let out. And he hastened away, hating her for it.
  4736  
  4737  "Any other boy!" Tom thought, grating his teeth. "Any boy in the whole
  4738  town but that Saint Louis smarty that thinks he dresses so fine and is
  4739  aristocracy! Oh, all right, I licked you the first day you ever saw
  4740  this town, mister, and I'll lick you again! You just wait till I catch
  4741  you out! I'll just take and--"
  4742  
  4743  And he went through the motions of thrashing an imaginary boy
  4744  --pummelling the air, and kicking and gouging. "Oh, you do, do you? You
  4745  holler 'nough, do you? Now, then, let that learn you!" And so the
  4746  imaginary flogging was finished to his satisfaction.
  4747  
  4748  Tom fled home at noon. His conscience could not endure any more of
  4749  Amy's grateful happiness, and his jealousy could bear no more of the
  4750  other distress. Becky resumed her picture inspections with Alfred, but
  4751  as the minutes dragged along and no Tom came to suffer, her triumph
  4752  began to cloud and she lost interest; gravity and absent-mindedness
  4753  followed, and then melancholy; two or three times she pricked up her
  4754  ear at a footstep, but it was a false hope; no Tom came. At last she
  4755  grew entirely miserable and wished she hadn't carried it so far. When
  4756  poor Alfred, seeing that he was losing her, he did not know how, kept
  4757  exclaiming: "Oh, here's a jolly one! look at this!" she lost patience
  4758  at last, and said, "Oh, don't bother me! I don't care for them!" and
  4759  burst into tears, and got up and walked away.
  4760  
  4761  Alfred dropped alongside and was going to try to comfort her, but she
  4762  said:
  4763  
  4764  "Go away and leave me alone, can't you! I hate you!"
  4765  
  4766  So the boy halted, wondering what he could have done--for she had said
  4767  she would look at pictures all through the nooning--and she walked on,
  4768  crying. Then Alfred went musing into the deserted schoolhouse. He was
  4769  humiliated and angry. He easily guessed his way to the truth--the girl
  4770  had simply made a convenience of him to vent her spite upon Tom Sawyer.
  4771  He was far from hating Tom the less when this thought occurred to him.
  4772  He wished there was some way to get that boy into trouble without much
  4773  risk to himself. Tom's spelling-book fell under his eye. Here was his
  4774  opportunity. He gratefully opened to the lesson for the afternoon and
  4775  poured ink upon the page.
  4776  
  4777  Becky, glancing in at a window behind him at the moment, saw the act,
  4778  and moved on, without discovering herself. She started homeward, now,
  4779  intending to find Tom and tell him; Tom would be thankful and their
  4780  troubles would be healed. Before she was half way home, however, she
  4781  had changed her mind. The thought of Tom's treatment of her when she
  4782  was talking about her picnic came scorching back and filled her with
  4783  shame. She resolved to let him get whipped on the damaged
  4784  spelling-book's account, and to hate him forever, into the bargain.
  4785  
  4786  
  4787  
  4788  CHAPTER XIX
  4789  
  4790  TOM arrived at home in a dreary mood, and the first thing his aunt
  4791  said to him showed him that he had brought his sorrows to an
  4792  unpromising market:
  4793  
  4794  "Tom, I've a notion to skin you alive!"
  4795  
  4796  "Auntie, what have I done?"
  4797  
  4798  "Well, you've done enough. Here I go over to Sereny Harper, like an
  4799  old softy, expecting I'm going to make her believe all that rubbage
  4800  about that dream, when lo and behold you she'd found out from Joe that
  4801  you was over here and heard all the talk we had that night. Tom, I
  4802  don't know what is to become of a boy that will act like that. It makes
  4803  me feel so bad to think you could let me go to Sereny Harper and make
  4804  such a fool of myself and never say a word."
  4805  
  4806  This was a new aspect of the thing. His smartness of the morning had
  4807  seemed to Tom a good joke before, and very ingenious. It merely looked
  4808  mean and shabby now. He hung his head and could not think of anything
  4809  to say for a moment. Then he said:
  4810  
  4811  "Auntie, I wish I hadn't done it--but I didn't think."
  4812  
  4813  "Oh, child, you never think. You never think of anything but your own
  4814  selfishness. You could think to come all the way over here from
  4815  Jackson's Island in the night to laugh at our troubles, and you could
  4816  think to fool me with a lie about a dream; but you couldn't ever think
  4817  to pity us and save us from sorrow."
  4818  
  4819  "Auntie, I know now it was mean, but I didn't mean to be mean. I
  4820  didn't, honest. And besides, I didn't come over here to laugh at you
  4821  that night."
  4822  
  4823  "What did you come for, then?"
  4824  
  4825  "It was to tell you not to be uneasy about us, because we hadn't got
  4826  drownded."
  4827  
  4828  "Tom, Tom, I would be the thankfullest soul in this world if I could
  4829  believe you ever had as good a thought as that, but you know you never
  4830  did--and I know it, Tom."
  4831  
  4832  "Indeed and 'deed I did, auntie--I wish I may never stir if I didn't."
  4833  
  4834  "Oh, Tom, don't lie--don't do it. It only makes things a hundred times
  4835  worse."
  4836  
  4837  "It ain't a lie, auntie; it's the truth. I wanted to keep you from
  4838  grieving--that was all that made me come."
  4839  
  4840  "I'd give the whole world to believe that--it would cover up a power
  4841  of sins, Tom. I'd 'most be glad you'd run off and acted so bad. But it
  4842  ain't reasonable; because, why didn't you tell me, child?"
  4843  
  4844  "Why, you see, when you got to talking about the funeral, I just got
  4845  all full of the idea of our coming and hiding in the church, and I
  4846  couldn't somehow bear to spoil it. So I just put the bark back in my
  4847  pocket and kept mum."
  4848  
  4849  "What bark?"
  4850  
  4851  "The bark I had wrote on to tell you we'd gone pirating. I wish, now,
  4852  you'd waked up when I kissed you--I do, honest."
  4853  
  4854  The hard lines in his aunt's face relaxed and a sudden tenderness
  4855  dawned in her eyes.
  4856  
  4857  "DID you kiss me, Tom?"
  4858  
  4859  "Why, yes, I did."
  4860  
  4861  "Are you sure you did, Tom?"
  4862  
  4863  "Why, yes, I did, auntie--certain sure."
  4864  
  4865  "What did you kiss me for, Tom?"
  4866  
  4867  "Because I loved you so, and you laid there moaning and I was so sorry."
  4868  
  4869  The words sounded like truth. The old lady could not hide a tremor in
  4870  her voice when she said:
  4871  
  4872  "Kiss me again, Tom!--and be off with you to school, now, and don't
  4873  bother me any more."
  4874  
  4875  The moment he was gone, she ran to a closet and got out the ruin of a
  4876  jacket which Tom had gone pirating in. Then she stopped, with it in her
  4877  hand, and said to herself:
  4878  
  4879  "No, I don't dare. Poor boy, I reckon he's lied about it--but it's a
  4880  blessed, blessed lie, there's such a comfort come from it. I hope the
  4881  Lord--I KNOW the Lord will forgive him, because it was such
  4882  goodheartedness in him to tell it. But I don't want to find out it's a
  4883  lie. I won't look."
  4884  
  4885  She put the jacket away, and stood by musing a minute. Twice she put
  4886  out her hand to take the garment again, and twice she refrained. Once
  4887  more she ventured, and this time she fortified herself with the
  4888  thought: "It's a good lie--it's a good lie--I won't let it grieve me."
  4889  So she sought the jacket pocket. A moment later she was reading Tom's
  4890  piece of bark through flowing tears and saying: "I could forgive the
  4891  boy, now, if he'd committed a million sins!"
  4892  
  4893  
  4894  
  4895  CHAPTER XX
  4896  
  4897  THERE was something about Aunt Polly's manner, when she kissed Tom,
  4898  that swept away his low spirits and made him lighthearted and happy
  4899  again. He started to school and had the luck of coming upon Becky
  4900  Thatcher at the head of Meadow Lane. His mood always determined his
  4901  manner. Without a moment's hesitation he ran to her and said:
  4902  
  4903  "I acted mighty mean to-day, Becky, and I'm so sorry. I won't ever,
  4904  ever do that way again, as long as ever I live--please make up, won't
  4905  you?"
  4906  
  4907  The girl stopped and looked him scornfully in the face:
  4908  
  4909  "I'll thank you to keep yourself TO yourself, Mr. Thomas Sawyer. I'll
  4910  never speak to you again."
  4911  
  4912  She tossed her head and passed on. Tom was so stunned that he had not
  4913  even presence of mind enough to say "Who cares, Miss Smarty?" until the
  4914  right time to say it had gone by. So he said nothing. But he was in a
  4915  fine rage, nevertheless. He moped into the schoolyard wishing she were
  4916  a boy, and imagining how he would trounce her if she were. He presently
  4917  encountered her and delivered a stinging remark as he passed. She
  4918  hurled one in return, and the angry breach was complete. It seemed to
  4919  Becky, in her hot resentment, that she could hardly wait for school to
  4920  "take in," she was so impatient to see Tom flogged for the injured
  4921  spelling-book. If she had had any lingering notion of exposing Alfred
  4922  Temple, Tom's offensive fling had driven it entirely away.
  4923  
  4924  Poor girl, she did not know how fast she was nearing trouble herself.
  4925  The master, Mr. Dobbins, had reached middle age with an unsatisfied
  4926  ambition. The darling of his desires was, to be a doctor, but poverty
  4927  had decreed that he should be nothing higher than a village
  4928  schoolmaster. Every day he took a mysterious book out of his desk and
  4929  absorbed himself in it at times when no classes were reciting. He kept
  4930  that book under lock and key. There was not an urchin in school but was
  4931  perishing to have a glimpse of it, but the chance never came. Every boy
  4932  and girl had a theory about the nature of that book; but no two
  4933  theories were alike, and there was no way of getting at the facts in
  4934  the case. Now, as Becky was passing by the desk, which stood near the
  4935  door, she noticed that the key was in the lock! It was a precious
  4936  moment. She glanced around; found herself alone, and the next instant
  4937  she had the book in her hands. The title-page--Professor Somebody's
  4938  ANATOMY--carried no information to her mind; so she began to turn the
  4939  leaves. She came at once upon a handsomely engraved and colored
  4940  frontispiece--a human figure, stark naked. At that moment a shadow fell
  4941  on the page and Tom Sawyer stepped in at the door and caught a glimpse
  4942  of the picture. Becky snatched at the book to close it, and had the
  4943  hard luck to tear the pictured page half down the middle. She thrust
  4944  the volume into the desk, turned the key, and burst out crying with
  4945  shame and vexation.
  4946  
  4947  "Tom Sawyer, you are just as mean as you can be, to sneak up on a
  4948  person and look at what they're looking at."
  4949  
  4950  "How could I know you was looking at anything?"
  4951  
  4952  "You ought to be ashamed of yourself, Tom Sawyer; you know you're
  4953  going to tell on me, and oh, what shall I do, what shall I do! I'll be
  4954  whipped, and I never was whipped in school."
  4955  
  4956  Then she stamped her little foot and said:
  4957  
  4958  "BE so mean if you want to! I know something that's going to happen.
  4959  You just wait and you'll see! Hateful, hateful, hateful!"--and she
  4960  flung out of the house with a new explosion of crying.
  4961  
  4962  Tom stood still, rather flustered by this onslaught. Presently he said
  4963  to himself:
  4964  
  4965  "What a curious kind of a fool a girl is! Never been licked in school!
  4966  Shucks! What's a licking! That's just like a girl--they're so
  4967  thin-skinned and chicken-hearted. Well, of course I ain't going to tell
  4968  old Dobbins on this little fool, because there's other ways of getting
  4969  even on her, that ain't so mean; but what of it? Old Dobbins will ask
  4970  who it was tore his book. Nobody'll answer. Then he'll do just the way
  4971  he always does--ask first one and then t'other, and when he comes to the
  4972  right girl he'll know it, without any telling. Girls' faces always tell
  4973  on them. They ain't got any backbone. She'll get licked. Well, it's a
  4974  kind of a tight place for Becky Thatcher, because there ain't any way
  4975  out of it." Tom conned the thing a moment longer, and then added: "All
  4976  right, though; she'd like to see me in just such a fix--let her sweat it
  4977  out!"
  4978  
  4979  Tom joined the mob of skylarking scholars outside. In a few moments
  4980  the master arrived and school "took in." Tom did not feel a strong
  4981  interest in his studies. Every time he stole a glance at the girls'
  4982  side of the room Becky's face troubled him. Considering all things, he
  4983  did not want to pity her, and yet it was all he could do to help it. He
  4984  could get up no exultation that was really worthy the name. Presently
  4985  the spelling-book discovery was made, and Tom's mind was entirely full
  4986  of his own matters for a while after that. Becky roused up from her
  4987  lethargy of distress and showed good interest in the proceedings. She
  4988  did not expect that Tom could get out of his trouble by denying that he
  4989  spilt the ink on the book himself; and she was right. The denial only
  4990  seemed to make the thing worse for Tom. Becky supposed she would be
  4991  glad of that, and she tried to believe she was glad of it, but she
  4992  found she was not certain. When the worst came to the worst, she had an
  4993  impulse to get up and tell on Alfred Temple, but she made an effort and
  4994  forced herself to keep still--because, said she to herself, "he'll tell
  4995  about me tearing the picture sure. I wouldn't say a word, not to save
  4996  his life!"
  4997  
  4998  Tom took his whipping and went back to his seat not at all
  4999  broken-hearted, for he thought it was possible that he had unknowingly
  5000  upset the ink on the spelling-book himself, in some skylarking bout--he
  5001  had denied it for form's sake and because it was custom, and had stuck
  5002  to the denial from principle.
  5003  
  5004  A whole hour drifted by, the master sat nodding in his throne, the air
  5005  was drowsy with the hum of study. By and by, Mr. Dobbins straightened
  5006  himself up, yawned, then unlocked his desk, and reached for his book,
  5007  but seemed undecided whether to take it out or leave it. Most of the
  5008  pupils glanced up languidly, but there were two among them that watched
  5009  his movements with intent eyes. Mr. Dobbins fingered his book absently
  5010  for a while, then took it out and settled himself in his chair to read!
  5011  Tom shot a glance at Becky. He had seen a hunted and helpless rabbit
  5012  look as she did, with a gun levelled at its head. Instantly he forgot
  5013  his quarrel with her. Quick--something must be done! done in a flash,
  5014  too! But the very imminence of the emergency paralyzed his invention.
  5015  Good!--he had an inspiration! He would run and snatch the book, spring
  5016  through the door and fly. But his resolution shook for one little
  5017  instant, and the chance was lost--the master opened the volume. If Tom
  5018  only had the wasted opportunity back again! Too late. There was no help
  5019  for Becky now, he said. The next moment the master faced the school.
  5020  Every eye sank under his gaze. There was that in it which smote even
  5021  the innocent with fear. There was silence while one might count ten
  5022  --the master was gathering his wrath. Then he spoke: "Who tore this book?"
  5023  
  5024  There was not a sound. One could have heard a pin drop. The stillness
  5025  continued; the master searched face after face for signs of guilt.
  5026  
  5027  "Benjamin Rogers, did you tear this book?"
  5028  
  5029  A denial. Another pause.
  5030  
  5031  "Joseph Harper, did you?"
  5032  
  5033  Another denial. Tom's uneasiness grew more and more intense under the
  5034  slow torture of these proceedings. The master scanned the ranks of
  5035  boys--considered a while, then turned to the girls:
  5036  
  5037  "Amy Lawrence?"
  5038  
  5039  A shake of the head.
  5040  
  5041  "Gracie Miller?"
  5042  
  5043  The same sign.
  5044  
  5045  "Susan Harper, did you do this?"
  5046  
  5047  Another negative. The next girl was Becky Thatcher. Tom was trembling
  5048  from head to foot with excitement and a sense of the hopelessness of
  5049  the situation.
  5050  
  5051  "Rebecca Thatcher" [Tom glanced at her face--it was white with terror]
  5052  --"did you tear--no, look me in the face" [her hands rose in appeal]
  5053  --"did you tear this book?"
  5054  
  5055  A thought shot like lightning through Tom's brain. He sprang to his
  5056  feet and shouted--"I done it!"
  5057  
  5058  The school stared in perplexity at this incredible folly. Tom stood a
  5059  moment, to gather his dismembered faculties; and when he stepped
  5060  forward to go to his punishment the surprise, the gratitude, the
  5061  adoration that shone upon him out of poor Becky's eyes seemed pay
  5062  enough for a hundred floggings. Inspired by the splendor of his own
  5063  act, he took without an outcry the most merciless flaying that even Mr.
  5064  Dobbins had ever administered; and also received with indifference the
  5065  added cruelty of a command to remain two hours after school should be
  5066  dismissed--for he knew who would wait for him outside till his
  5067  captivity was done, and not count the tedious time as loss, either.
  5068  
  5069  Tom went to bed that night planning vengeance against Alfred Temple;
  5070  for with shame and repentance Becky had told him all, not forgetting
  5071  her own treachery; but even the longing for vengeance had to give way,
  5072  soon, to pleasanter musings, and he fell asleep at last with Becky's
  5073  latest words lingering dreamily in his ear--
  5074  
  5075  "Tom, how COULD you be so noble!"
  5076  
  5077  
  5078  
  5079  CHAPTER XXI
  5080  
  5081  VACATION was approaching. The schoolmaster, always severe, grew
  5082  severer and more exacting than ever, for he wanted the school to make a
  5083  good showing on "Examination" day. His rod and his ferule were seldom
  5084  idle now--at least among the smaller pupils. Only the biggest boys, and
  5085  young ladies of eighteen and twenty, escaped lashing. Mr. Dobbins'
  5086  lashings were very vigorous ones, too; for although he carried, under
  5087  his wig, a perfectly bald and shiny head, he had only reached middle
  5088  age, and there was no sign of feebleness in his muscle. As the great
  5089  day approached, all the tyranny that was in him came to the surface; he
  5090  seemed to take a vindictive pleasure in punishing the least
  5091  shortcomings. The consequence was, that the smaller boys spent their
  5092  days in terror and suffering and their nights in plotting revenge. They
  5093  threw away no opportunity to do the master a mischief. But he kept
  5094  ahead all the time. The retribution that followed every vengeful
  5095  success was so sweeping and majestic that the boys always retired from
  5096  the field badly worsted. At last they conspired together and hit upon a
  5097  plan that promised a dazzling victory. They swore in the sign-painter's
  5098  boy, told him the scheme, and asked his help. He had his own reasons
  5099  for being delighted, for the master boarded in his father's family and
  5100  had given the boy ample cause to hate him. The master's wife would go
  5101  on a visit to the country in a few days, and there would be nothing to
  5102  interfere with the plan; the master always prepared himself for great
  5103  occasions by getting pretty well fuddled, and the sign-painter's boy
  5104  said that when the dominie had reached the proper condition on
  5105  Examination Evening he would "manage the thing" while he napped in his
  5106  chair; then he would have him awakened at the right time and hurried
  5107  away to school.
  5108  
  5109  In the fulness of time the interesting occasion arrived. At eight in
  5110  the evening the schoolhouse was brilliantly lighted, and adorned with
  5111  wreaths and festoons of foliage and flowers. The master sat throned in
  5112  his great chair upon a raised platform, with his blackboard behind him.
  5113  He was looking tolerably mellow. Three rows of benches on each side and
  5114  six rows in front of him were occupied by the dignitaries of the town
  5115  and by the parents of the pupils. To his left, back of the rows of
  5116  citizens, was a spacious temporary platform upon which were seated the
  5117  scholars who were to take part in the exercises of the evening; rows of
  5118  small boys, washed and dressed to an intolerable state of discomfort;
  5119  rows of gawky big boys; snowbanks of girls and young ladies clad in
  5120  lawn and muslin and conspicuously conscious of their bare arms, their
  5121  grandmothers' ancient trinkets, their bits of pink and blue ribbon and
  5122  the flowers in their hair. All the rest of the house was filled with
  5123  non-participating scholars.
  5124  
  5125  The exercises began. A very little boy stood up and sheepishly
  5126  recited, "You'd scarce expect one of my age to speak in public on the
  5127  stage," etc.--accompanying himself with the painfully exact and
  5128  spasmodic gestures which a machine might have used--supposing the
  5129  machine to be a trifle out of order. But he got through safely, though
  5130  cruelly scared, and got a fine round of applause when he made his
  5131  manufactured bow and retired.
  5132  
  5133  A little shamefaced girl lisped, "Mary had a little lamb," etc.,
  5134  performed a compassion-inspiring curtsy, got her meed of applause, and
  5135  sat down flushed and happy.
  5136  
  5137  Tom Sawyer stepped forward with conceited confidence and soared into
  5138  the unquenchable and indestructible "Give me liberty or give me death"
  5139  speech, with fine fury and frantic gesticulation, and broke down in the
  5140  middle of it. A ghastly stage-fright seized him, his legs quaked under
  5141  him and he was like to choke. True, he had the manifest sympathy of the
  5142  house but he had the house's silence, too, which was even worse than
  5143  its sympathy. The master frowned, and this completed the disaster. Tom
  5144  struggled awhile and then retired, utterly defeated. There was a weak
  5145  attempt at applause, but it died early.
  5146  
  5147  "The Boy Stood on the Burning Deck" followed; also "The Assyrian Came
  5148  Down," and other declamatory gems. Then there were reading exercises,
  5149  and a spelling fight. The meagre Latin class recited with honor. The
  5150  prime feature of the evening was in order, now--original "compositions"
  5151  by the young ladies. Each in her turn stepped forward to the edge of
  5152  the platform, cleared her throat, held up her manuscript (tied with
  5153  dainty ribbon), and proceeded to read, with labored attention to
  5154  "expression" and punctuation. The themes were the same that had been
  5155  illuminated upon similar occasions by their mothers before them, their
  5156  grandmothers, and doubtless all their ancestors in the female line
  5157  clear back to the Crusades. "Friendship" was one; "Memories of Other
  5158  Days"; "Religion in History"; "Dream Land"; "The Advantages of
  5159  Culture"; "Forms of Political Government Compared and Contrasted";
  5160  "Melancholy"; "Filial Love"; "Heart Longings," etc., etc.
  5161  
  5162  A prevalent feature in these compositions was a nursed and petted
  5163  melancholy; another was a wasteful and opulent gush of "fine language";
  5164  another was a tendency to lug in by the ears particularly prized words
  5165  and phrases until they were worn entirely out; and a peculiarity that
  5166  conspicuously marked and marred them was the inveterate and intolerable
  5167  sermon that wagged its crippled tail at the end of each and every one
  5168  of them. No matter what the subject might be, a brain-racking effort
  5169  was made to squirm it into some aspect or other that the moral and
  5170  religious mind could contemplate with edification. The glaring
  5171  insincerity of these sermons was not sufficient to compass the
  5172  banishment of the fashion from the schools, and it is not sufficient
  5173  to-day; it never will be sufficient while the world stands, perhaps.
  5174  There is no school in all our land where the young ladies do not feel
  5175  obliged to close their compositions with a sermon; and you will find
  5176  that the sermon of the most frivolous and the least religious girl in
  5177  the school is always the longest and the most relentlessly pious. But
  5178  enough of this. Homely truth is unpalatable.
  5179  
  5180  Let us return to the "Examination." The first composition that was
  5181  read was one entitled "Is this, then, Life?" Perhaps the reader can
  5182  endure an extract from it:
  5183  
  5184    "In the common walks of life, with what delightful
  5185     emotions does the youthful mind look forward to some
  5186     anticipated scene of festivity! Imagination is busy
  5187     sketching rose-tinted pictures of joy. In fancy, the
  5188     voluptuous votary of fashion sees herself amid the
  5189     festive throng, 'the observed of all observers.' Her
  5190     graceful form, arrayed in snowy robes, is whirling
  5191     through the mazes of the joyous dance; her eye is
  5192     brightest, her step is lightest in the gay assembly.
  5193  
  5194    "In such delicious fancies time quickly glides by,
  5195     and the welcome hour arrives for her entrance into
  5196     the Elysian world, of which she has had such bright
  5197     dreams. How fairy-like does everything appear to
  5198     her enchanted vision! Each new scene is more charming
  5199     than the last. But after a while she finds that
  5200     beneath this goodly exterior, all is vanity, the
  5201     flattery which once charmed her soul, now grates
  5202     harshly upon her ear; the ball-room has lost its
  5203     charms; and with wasted health and imbittered heart,
  5204     she turns away with the conviction that earthly
  5205     pleasures cannot satisfy the longings of the soul!"
  5206  
  5207  And so forth and so on. There was a buzz of gratification from time to
  5208  time during the reading, accompanied by whispered ejaculations of "How
  5209  sweet!" "How eloquent!" "So true!" etc., and after the thing had closed
  5210  with a peculiarly afflicting sermon the applause was enthusiastic.
  5211  
  5212  Then arose a slim, melancholy girl, whose face had the "interesting"
  5213  paleness that comes of pills and indigestion, and read a "poem." Two
  5214  stanzas of it will do:
  5215  
  5216     "A MISSOURI MAIDEN'S FAREWELL TO ALABAMA
  5217  
  5218     "Alabama, good-bye! I love thee well!
  5219        But yet for a while do I leave thee now!
  5220      Sad, yes, sad thoughts of thee my heart doth swell,
  5221        And burning recollections throng my brow!
  5222      For I have wandered through thy flowery woods;
  5223        Have roamed and read near Tallapoosa's stream;
  5224      Have listened to Tallassee's warring floods,
  5225        And wooed on Coosa's side Aurora's beam.
  5226  
  5227     "Yet shame I not to bear an o'er-full heart,
  5228        Nor blush to turn behind my tearful eyes;
  5229      'Tis from no stranger land I now must part,
  5230        'Tis to no strangers left I yield these sighs.
  5231      Welcome and home were mine within this State,
  5232        Whose vales I leave--whose spires fade fast from me
  5233      And cold must be mine eyes, and heart, and tete,
  5234        When, dear Alabama! they turn cold on thee!"
  5235  
  5236  There were very few there who knew what "tete" meant, but the poem was
  5237  very satisfactory, nevertheless.
  5238  
  5239  Next appeared a dark-complexioned, black-eyed, black-haired young
  5240  lady, who paused an impressive moment, assumed a tragic expression, and
  5241  began to read in a measured, solemn tone:
  5242  
  5243    "A VISION
  5244  
  5245     "Dark and tempestuous was night. Around the
  5246     throne on high not a single star quivered; but
  5247     the deep intonations of the heavy thunder
  5248     constantly vibrated upon the ear; whilst the
  5249     terrific lightning revelled in angry mood
  5250     through the cloudy chambers of heaven, seeming
  5251     to scorn the power exerted over its terror by
  5252     the illustrious Franklin! Even the boisterous
  5253     winds unanimously came forth from their mystic
  5254     homes, and blustered about as if to enhance by
  5255     their aid the wildness of the scene.
  5256  
  5257     "At such a time, so dark, so dreary, for human
  5258     sympathy my very spirit sighed; but instead thereof,
  5259  
  5260     "'My dearest friend, my counsellor, my comforter
  5261     and guide--My joy in grief, my second bliss
  5262     in joy,' came to my side. She moved like one of
  5263     those bright beings pictured in the sunny walks
  5264     of fancy's Eden by the romantic and young, a
  5265     queen of beauty unadorned save by her own
  5266     transcendent loveliness. So soft was her step, it
  5267     failed to make even a sound, and but for the
  5268     magical thrill imparted by her genial touch, as
  5269     other unobtrusive beauties, she would have glided
  5270     away un-perceived--unsought. A strange sadness
  5271     rested upon her features, like icy tears upon
  5272     the robe of December, as she pointed to the
  5273     contending elements without, and bade me contemplate
  5274     the two beings presented."
  5275  
  5276  This nightmare occupied some ten pages of manuscript and wound up with
  5277  a sermon so destructive of all hope to non-Presbyterians that it took
  5278  the first prize. This composition was considered to be the very finest
  5279  effort of the evening. The mayor of the village, in delivering the
  5280  prize to the author of it, made a warm speech in which he said that it
  5281  was by far the most "eloquent" thing he had ever listened to, and that
  5282  Daniel Webster himself might well be proud of it.
  5283  
  5284  It may be remarked, in passing, that the number of compositions in
  5285  which the word "beauteous" was over-fondled, and human experience
  5286  referred to as "life's page," was up to the usual average.
  5287  
  5288  Now the master, mellow almost to the verge of geniality, put his chair
  5289  aside, turned his back to the audience, and began to draw a map of
  5290  America on the blackboard, to exercise the geography class upon. But he
  5291  made a sad business of it with his unsteady hand, and a smothered
  5292  titter rippled over the house. He knew what the matter was, and set
  5293  himself to right it. He sponged out lines and remade them; but he only
  5294  distorted them more than ever, and the tittering was more pronounced.
  5295  He threw his entire attention upon his work, now, as if determined not
  5296  to be put down by the mirth. He felt that all eyes were fastened upon
  5297  him; he imagined he was succeeding, and yet the tittering continued; it
  5298  even manifestly increased. And well it might. There was a garret above,
  5299  pierced with a scuttle over his head; and down through this scuttle
  5300  came a cat, suspended around the haunches by a string; she had a rag
  5301  tied about her head and jaws to keep her from mewing; as she slowly
  5302  descended she curved upward and clawed at the string, she swung
  5303  downward and clawed at the intangible air. The tittering rose higher
  5304  and higher--the cat was within six inches of the absorbed teacher's
  5305  head--down, down, a little lower, and she grabbed his wig with her
  5306  desperate claws, clung to it, and was snatched up into the garret in an
  5307  instant with her trophy still in her possession! And how the light did
  5308  blaze abroad from the master's bald pate--for the sign-painter's boy
  5309  had GILDED it!
  5310  
  5311  That broke up the meeting. The boys were avenged. Vacation had come.
  5312  
  5313     NOTE:--The pretended "compositions" quoted in
  5314     this chapter are taken without alteration from a
  5315     volume entitled "Prose and Poetry, by a Western
  5316     Lady"--but they are exactly and precisely after
  5317     the schoolgirl pattern, and hence are much
  5318     happier than any mere imitations could be.
  5319  
  5320  
  5321  
  5322  CHAPTER XXII
  5323  
  5324  TOM joined the new order of Cadets of Temperance, being attracted by
  5325  the showy character of their "regalia." He promised to abstain from
  5326  smoking, chewing, and profanity as long as he remained a member. Now he
  5327  found out a new thing--namely, that to promise not to do a thing is the
  5328  surest way in the world to make a body want to go and do that very
  5329  thing. Tom soon found himself tormented with a desire to drink and
  5330  swear; the desire grew to be so intense that nothing but the hope of a
  5331  chance to display himself in his red sash kept him from withdrawing
  5332  from the order. Fourth of July was coming; but he soon gave that up
  5333  --gave it up before he had worn his shackles over forty-eight hours--and
  5334  fixed his hopes upon old Judge Frazer, justice of the peace, who was
  5335  apparently on his deathbed and would have a big public funeral, since
  5336  he was so high an official. During three days Tom was deeply concerned
  5337  about the Judge's condition and hungry for news of it. Sometimes his
  5338  hopes ran high--so high that he would venture to get out his regalia
  5339  and practise before the looking-glass. But the Judge had a most
  5340  discouraging way of fluctuating. At last he was pronounced upon the
  5341  mend--and then convalescent. Tom was disgusted; and felt a sense of
  5342  injury, too. He handed in his resignation at once--and that night the
  5343  Judge suffered a relapse and died. Tom resolved that he would never
  5344  trust a man like that again.
  5345  
  5346  The funeral was a fine thing. The Cadets paraded in a style calculated
  5347  to kill the late member with envy. Tom was a free boy again, however
  5348  --there was something in that. He could drink and swear, now--but found
  5349  to his surprise that he did not want to. The simple fact that he could,
  5350  took the desire away, and the charm of it.
  5351  
  5352  Tom presently wondered to find that his coveted vacation was beginning
  5353  to hang a little heavily on his hands.
  5354  
  5355  He attempted a diary--but nothing happened during three days, and so
  5356  he abandoned it.
  5357  
  5358  The first of all the negro minstrel shows came to town, and made a
  5359  sensation. Tom and Joe Harper got up a band of performers and were
  5360  happy for two days.
  5361  
  5362  Even the Glorious Fourth was in some sense a failure, for it rained
  5363  hard, there was no procession in consequence, and the greatest man in
  5364  the world (as Tom supposed), Mr. Benton, an actual United States
  5365  Senator, proved an overwhelming disappointment--for he was not
  5366  twenty-five feet high, nor even anywhere in the neighborhood of it.
  5367  
  5368  A circus came. The boys played circus for three days afterward in
  5369  tents made of rag carpeting--admission, three pins for boys, two for
  5370  girls--and then circusing was abandoned.
  5371  
  5372  A phrenologist and a mesmerizer came--and went again and left the
  5373  village duller and drearier than ever.
  5374  
  5375  There were some boys-and-girls' parties, but they were so few and so
  5376  delightful that they only made the aching voids between ache the harder.
  5377  
  5378  Becky Thatcher was gone to her Constantinople home to stay with her
  5379  parents during vacation--so there was no bright side to life anywhere.
  5380  
  5381  The dreadful secret of the murder was a chronic misery. It was a very
  5382  cancer for permanency and pain.
  5383  
  5384  Then came the measles.
  5385  
  5386  During two long weeks Tom lay a prisoner, dead to the world and its
  5387  happenings. He was very ill, he was interested in nothing. When he got
  5388  upon his feet at last and moved feebly down-town, a melancholy change
  5389  had come over everything and every creature. There had been a
  5390  "revival," and everybody had "got religion," not only the adults, but
  5391  even the boys and girls. Tom went about, hoping against hope for the
  5392  sight of one blessed sinful face, but disappointment crossed him
  5393  everywhere. He found Joe Harper studying a Testament, and turned sadly
  5394  away from the depressing spectacle. He sought Ben Rogers, and found him
  5395  visiting the poor with a basket of tracts. He hunted up Jim Hollis, who
  5396  called his attention to the precious blessing of his late measles as a
  5397  warning. Every boy he encountered added another ton to his depression;
  5398  and when, in desperation, he flew for refuge at last to the bosom of
  5399  Huckleberry Finn and was received with a Scriptural quotation, his
  5400  heart broke and he crept home and to bed realizing that he alone of all
  5401  the town was lost, forever and forever.
  5402  
  5403  And that night there came on a terrific storm, with driving rain,
  5404  awful claps of thunder and blinding sheets of lightning. He covered his
  5405  head with the bedclothes and waited in a horror of suspense for his
  5406  doom; for he had not the shadow of a doubt that all this hubbub was
  5407  about him. He believed he had taxed the forbearance of the powers above
  5408  to the extremity of endurance and that this was the result. It might
  5409  have seemed to him a waste of pomp and ammunition to kill a bug with a
  5410  battery of artillery, but there seemed nothing incongruous about the
  5411  getting up such an expensive thunderstorm as this to knock the turf
  5412  from under an insect like himself.
  5413  
  5414  By and by the tempest spent itself and died without accomplishing its
  5415  object. The boy's first impulse was to be grateful, and reform. His
  5416  second was to wait--for there might not be any more storms.
  5417  
  5418  The next day the doctors were back; Tom had relapsed. The three weeks
  5419  he spent on his back this time seemed an entire age. When he got abroad
  5420  at last he was hardly grateful that he had been spared, remembering how
  5421  lonely was his estate, how companionless and forlorn he was. He drifted
  5422  listlessly down the street and found Jim Hollis acting as judge in a
  5423  juvenile court that was trying a cat for murder, in the presence of her
  5424  victim, a bird. He found Joe Harper and Huck Finn up an alley eating a
  5425  stolen melon. Poor lads! they--like Tom--had suffered a relapse.
  5426  
  5427  
  5428  
  5429  CHAPTER XXIII
  5430  
  5431  AT last the sleepy atmosphere was stirred--and vigorously: the murder
  5432  trial came on in the court. It became the absorbing topic of village
  5433  talk immediately. Tom could not get away from it. Every reference to
  5434  the murder sent a shudder to his heart, for his troubled conscience and
  5435  fears almost persuaded him that these remarks were put forth in his
  5436  hearing as "feelers"; he did not see how he could be suspected of
  5437  knowing anything about the murder, but still he could not be
  5438  comfortable in the midst of this gossip. It kept him in a cold shiver
  5439  all the time. He took Huck to a lonely place to have a talk with him.
  5440  It would be some relief to unseal his tongue for a little while; to
  5441  divide his burden of distress with another sufferer. Moreover, he
  5442  wanted to assure himself that Huck had remained discreet.
  5443  
  5444  "Huck, have you ever told anybody about--that?"
  5445  
  5446  "'Bout what?"
  5447  
  5448  "You know what."
  5449  
  5450  "Oh--'course I haven't."
  5451  
  5452  "Never a word?"
  5453  
  5454  "Never a solitary word, so help me. What makes you ask?"
  5455  
  5456  "Well, I was afeard."
  5457  
  5458  "Why, Tom Sawyer, we wouldn't be alive two days if that got found out.
  5459  YOU know that."
  5460  
  5461  Tom felt more comfortable. After a pause:
  5462  
  5463  "Huck, they couldn't anybody get you to tell, could they?"
  5464  
  5465  "Get me to tell? Why, if I wanted that half-breed devil to drownd me
  5466  they could get me to tell. They ain't no different way."
  5467  
  5468  "Well, that's all right, then. I reckon we're safe as long as we keep
  5469  mum. But let's swear again, anyway. It's more surer."
  5470  
  5471  "I'm agreed."
  5472  
  5473  So they swore again with dread solemnities.
  5474  
  5475  "What is the talk around, Huck? I've heard a power of it."
  5476  
  5477  "Talk? Well, it's just Muff Potter, Muff Potter, Muff Potter all the
  5478  time. It keeps me in a sweat, constant, so's I want to hide som'ers."
  5479  
  5480  "That's just the same way they go on round me. I reckon he's a goner.
  5481  Don't you feel sorry for him, sometimes?"
  5482  
  5483  "Most always--most always. He ain't no account; but then he hain't
  5484  ever done anything to hurt anybody. Just fishes a little, to get money
  5485  to get drunk on--and loafs around considerable; but lord, we all do
  5486  that--leastways most of us--preachers and such like. But he's kind of
  5487  good--he give me half a fish, once, when there warn't enough for two;
  5488  and lots of times he's kind of stood by me when I was out of luck."
  5489  
  5490  "Well, he's mended kites for me, Huck, and knitted hooks on to my
  5491  line. I wish we could get him out of there."
  5492  
  5493  "My! we couldn't get him out, Tom. And besides, 'twouldn't do any
  5494  good; they'd ketch him again."
  5495  
  5496  "Yes--so they would. But I hate to hear 'em abuse him so like the
  5497  dickens when he never done--that."
  5498  
  5499  "I do too, Tom. Lord, I hear 'em say he's the bloodiest looking
  5500  villain in this country, and they wonder he wasn't ever hung before."
  5501  
  5502  "Yes, they talk like that, all the time. I've heard 'em say that if he
  5503  was to get free they'd lynch him."
  5504  
  5505  "And they'd do it, too."
  5506  
  5507  The boys had a long talk, but it brought them little comfort. As the
  5508  twilight drew on, they found themselves hanging about the neighborhood
  5509  of the little isolated jail, perhaps with an undefined hope that
  5510  something would happen that might clear away their difficulties. But
  5511  nothing happened; there seemed to be no angels or fairies interested in
  5512  this luckless captive.
  5513  
  5514  The boys did as they had often done before--went to the cell grating
  5515  and gave Potter some tobacco and matches. He was on the ground floor
  5516  and there were no guards.
  5517  
  5518  His gratitude for their gifts had always smote their consciences
  5519  before--it cut deeper than ever, this time. They felt cowardly and
  5520  treacherous to the last degree when Potter said:
  5521  
  5522  "You've been mighty good to me, boys--better'n anybody else in this
  5523  town. And I don't forget it, I don't. Often I says to myself, says I,
  5524  'I used to mend all the boys' kites and things, and show 'em where the
  5525  good fishin' places was, and befriend 'em what I could, and now they've
  5526  all forgot old Muff when he's in trouble; but Tom don't, and Huck
  5527  don't--THEY don't forget him, says I, 'and I don't forget them.' Well,
  5528  boys, I done an awful thing--drunk and crazy at the time--that's the
  5529  only way I account for it--and now I got to swing for it, and it's
  5530  right. Right, and BEST, too, I reckon--hope so, anyway. Well, we won't
  5531  talk about that. I don't want to make YOU feel bad; you've befriended
  5532  me. But what I want to say, is, don't YOU ever get drunk--then you won't
  5533  ever get here. Stand a litter furder west--so--that's it; it's a prime
  5534  comfort to see faces that's friendly when a body's in such a muck of
  5535  trouble, and there don't none come here but yourn. Good friendly
  5536  faces--good friendly faces. Git up on one another's backs and let me
  5537  touch 'em. That's it. Shake hands--yourn'll come through the bars, but
  5538  mine's too big. Little hands, and weak--but they've helped Muff Potter
  5539  a power, and they'd help him more if they could."
  5540  
  5541  Tom went home miserable, and his dreams that night were full of
  5542  horrors. The next day and the day after, he hung about the court-room,
  5543  drawn by an almost irresistible impulse to go in, but forcing himself
  5544  to stay out. Huck was having the same experience. They studiously
  5545  avoided each other. Each wandered away, from time to time, but the same
  5546  dismal fascination always brought them back presently. Tom kept his
  5547  ears open when idlers sauntered out of the court-room, but invariably
  5548  heard distressing news--the toils were closing more and more
  5549  relentlessly around poor Potter. At the end of the second day the
  5550  village talk was to the effect that Injun Joe's evidence stood firm and
  5551  unshaken, and that there was not the slightest question as to what the
  5552  jury's verdict would be.
  5553  
  5554  Tom was out late, that night, and came to bed through the window. He
  5555  was in a tremendous state of excitement. It was hours before he got to
  5556  sleep. All the village flocked to the court-house the next morning, for
  5557  this was to be the great day. Both sexes were about equally represented
  5558  in the packed audience. After a long wait the jury filed in and took
  5559  their places; shortly afterward, Potter, pale and haggard, timid and
  5560  hopeless, was brought in, with chains upon him, and seated where all
  5561  the curious eyes could stare at him; no less conspicuous was Injun Joe,
  5562  stolid as ever. There was another pause, and then the judge arrived and
  5563  the sheriff proclaimed the opening of the court. The usual whisperings
  5564  among the lawyers and gathering together of papers followed. These
  5565  details and accompanying delays worked up an atmosphere of preparation
  5566  that was as impressive as it was fascinating.
  5567  
  5568  Now a witness was called who testified that he found Muff Potter
  5569  washing in the brook, at an early hour of the morning that the murder
  5570  was discovered, and that he immediately sneaked away. After some
  5571  further questioning, counsel for the prosecution said:
  5572  
  5573  "Take the witness."
  5574  
  5575  The prisoner raised his eyes for a moment, but dropped them again when
  5576  his own counsel said:
  5577  
  5578  "I have no questions to ask him."
  5579  
  5580  The next witness proved the finding of the knife near the corpse.
  5581  Counsel for the prosecution said:
  5582  
  5583  "Take the witness."
  5584  
  5585  "I have no questions to ask him," Potter's lawyer replied.
  5586  
  5587  A third witness swore he had often seen the knife in Potter's
  5588  possession.
  5589  
  5590  "Take the witness."
  5591  
  5592  Counsel for Potter declined to question him. The faces of the audience
  5593  began to betray annoyance. Did this attorney mean to throw away his
  5594  client's life without an effort?
  5595  
  5596  Several witnesses deposed concerning Potter's guilty behavior when
  5597  brought to the scene of the murder. They were allowed to leave the
  5598  stand without being cross-questioned.
  5599  
  5600  Every detail of the damaging circumstances that occurred in the
  5601  graveyard upon that morning which all present remembered so well was
  5602  brought out by credible witnesses, but none of them were cross-examined
  5603  by Potter's lawyer. The perplexity and dissatisfaction of the house
  5604  expressed itself in murmurs and provoked a reproof from the bench.
  5605  Counsel for the prosecution now said:
  5606  
  5607  "By the oaths of citizens whose simple word is above suspicion, we
  5608  have fastened this awful crime, beyond all possibility of question,
  5609  upon the unhappy prisoner at the bar. We rest our case here."
  5610  
  5611  A groan escaped from poor Potter, and he put his face in his hands and
  5612  rocked his body softly to and fro, while a painful silence reigned in
  5613  the court-room. Many men were moved, and many women's compassion
  5614  testified itself in tears. Counsel for the defence rose and said:
  5615  
  5616  "Your honor, in our remarks at the opening of this trial, we
  5617  foreshadowed our purpose to prove that our client did this fearful deed
  5618  while under the influence of a blind and irresponsible delirium
  5619  produced by drink. We have changed our mind. We shall not offer that
  5620  plea." [Then to the clerk:] "Call Thomas Sawyer!"
  5621  
  5622  A puzzled amazement awoke in every face in the house, not even
  5623  excepting Potter's. Every eye fastened itself with wondering interest
  5624  upon Tom as he rose and took his place upon the stand. The boy looked
  5625  wild enough, for he was badly scared. The oath was administered.
  5626  
  5627  "Thomas Sawyer, where were you on the seventeenth of June, about the
  5628  hour of midnight?"
  5629  
  5630  Tom glanced at Injun Joe's iron face and his tongue failed him. The
  5631  audience listened breathless, but the words refused to come. After a
  5632  few moments, however, the boy got a little of his strength back, and
  5633  managed to put enough of it into his voice to make part of the house
  5634  hear:
  5635  
  5636  "In the graveyard!"
  5637  
  5638  "A little bit louder, please. Don't be afraid. You were--"
  5639  
  5640  "In the graveyard."
  5641  
  5642  A contemptuous smile flitted across Injun Joe's face.
  5643  
  5644  "Were you anywhere near Horse Williams' grave?"
  5645  
  5646  "Yes, sir."
  5647  
  5648  "Speak up--just a trifle louder. How near were you?"
  5649  
  5650  "Near as I am to you."
  5651  
  5652  "Were you hidden, or not?"
  5653  
  5654  "I was hid."
  5655  
  5656  "Where?"
  5657  
  5658  "Behind the elms that's on the edge of the grave."
  5659  
  5660  Injun Joe gave a barely perceptible start.
  5661  
  5662  "Any one with you?"
  5663  
  5664  "Yes, sir. I went there with--"
  5665  
  5666  "Wait--wait a moment. Never mind mentioning your companion's name. We
  5667  will produce him at the proper time. Did you carry anything there with
  5668  you."
  5669  
  5670  Tom hesitated and looked confused.
  5671  
  5672  "Speak out, my boy--don't be diffident. The truth is always
  5673  respectable. What did you take there?"
  5674  
  5675  "Only a--a--dead cat."
  5676  
  5677  There was a ripple of mirth, which the court checked.
  5678  
  5679  "We will produce the skeleton of that cat. Now, my boy, tell us
  5680  everything that occurred--tell it in your own way--don't skip anything,
  5681  and don't be afraid."
  5682  
  5683  Tom began--hesitatingly at first, but as he warmed to his subject his
  5684  words flowed more and more easily; in a little while every sound ceased
  5685  but his own voice; every eye fixed itself upon him; with parted lips
  5686  and bated breath the audience hung upon his words, taking no note of
  5687  time, rapt in the ghastly fascinations of the tale. The strain upon
  5688  pent emotion reached its climax when the boy said:
  5689  
  5690  "--and as the doctor fetched the board around and Muff Potter fell,
  5691  Injun Joe jumped with the knife and--"
  5692  
  5693  Crash! Quick as lightning the half-breed sprang for a window, tore his
  5694  way through all opposers, and was gone!
  5695  
  5696  
  5697  
  5698  CHAPTER XXIV
  5699  
  5700  TOM was a glittering hero once more--the pet of the old, the envy of
  5701  the young. His name even went into immortal print, for the village
  5702  paper magnified him. There were some that believed he would be
  5703  President, yet, if he escaped hanging.
  5704  
  5705  As usual, the fickle, unreasoning world took Muff Potter to its bosom
  5706  and fondled him as lavishly as it had abused him before. But that sort
  5707  of conduct is to the world's credit; therefore it is not well to find
  5708  fault with it.
  5709  
  5710  Tom's days were days of splendor and exultation to him, but his nights
  5711  were seasons of horror. Injun Joe infested all his dreams, and always
  5712  with doom in his eye. Hardly any temptation could persuade the boy to
  5713  stir abroad after nightfall. Poor Huck was in the same state of
  5714  wretchedness and terror, for Tom had told the whole story to the lawyer
  5715  the night before the great day of the trial, and Huck was sore afraid
  5716  that his share in the business might leak out, yet, notwithstanding
  5717  Injun Joe's flight had saved him the suffering of testifying in court.
  5718  The poor fellow had got the attorney to promise secrecy, but what of
  5719  that? Since Tom's harassed conscience had managed to drive him to the
  5720  lawyer's house by night and wring a dread tale from lips that had been
  5721  sealed with the dismalest and most formidable of oaths, Huck's
  5722  confidence in the human race was well-nigh obliterated.
  5723  
  5724  Daily Muff Potter's gratitude made Tom glad he had spoken; but nightly
  5725  he wished he had sealed up his tongue.
  5726  
  5727  Half the time Tom was afraid Injun Joe would never be captured; the
  5728  other half he was afraid he would be. He felt sure he never could draw
  5729  a safe breath again until that man was dead and he had seen the corpse.
  5730  
  5731  Rewards had been offered, the country had been scoured, but no Injun
  5732  Joe was found. One of those omniscient and awe-inspiring marvels, a
  5733  detective, came up from St. Louis, moused around, shook his head,
  5734  looked wise, and made that sort of astounding success which members of
  5735  that craft usually achieve. That is to say, he "found a clew." But you
  5736  can't hang a "clew" for murder, and so after that detective had got
  5737  through and gone home, Tom felt just as insecure as he was before.
  5738  
  5739  The slow days drifted on, and each left behind it a slightly lightened
  5740  weight of apprehension.
  5741  
  5742  
  5743  
  5744  CHAPTER XXV
  5745  
  5746  THERE comes a time in every rightly-constructed boy's life when he has
  5747  a raging desire to go somewhere and dig for hidden treasure. This
  5748  desire suddenly came upon Tom one day. He sallied out to find Joe
  5749  Harper, but failed of success. Next he sought Ben Rogers; he had gone
  5750  fishing. Presently he stumbled upon Huck Finn the Red-Handed. Huck
  5751  would answer. Tom took him to a private place and opened the matter to
  5752  him confidentially. Huck was willing. Huck was always willing to take a
  5753  hand in any enterprise that offered entertainment and required no
  5754  capital, for he had a troublesome superabundance of that sort of time
  5755  which is not money. "Where'll we dig?" said Huck.
  5756  
  5757  "Oh, most anywhere."
  5758  
  5759  "Why, is it hid all around?"
  5760  
  5761  "No, indeed it ain't. It's hid in mighty particular places, Huck
  5762  --sometimes on islands, sometimes in rotten chests under the end of a
  5763  limb of an old dead tree, just where the shadow falls at midnight; but
  5764  mostly under the floor in ha'nted houses."
  5765  
  5766  "Who hides it?"
  5767  
  5768  "Why, robbers, of course--who'd you reckon? Sunday-school
  5769  sup'rintendents?"
  5770  
  5771  "I don't know. If 'twas mine I wouldn't hide it; I'd spend it and have
  5772  a good time."
  5773  
  5774  "So would I. But robbers don't do that way. They always hide it and
  5775  leave it there."
  5776  
  5777  "Don't they come after it any more?"
  5778  
  5779  "No, they think they will, but they generally forget the marks, or
  5780  else they die. Anyway, it lays there a long time and gets rusty; and by
  5781  and by somebody finds an old yellow paper that tells how to find the
  5782  marks--a paper that's got to be ciphered over about a week because it's
  5783  mostly signs and hy'roglyphics."
  5784  
  5785  "Hyro--which?"
  5786  
  5787  "Hy'roglyphics--pictures and things, you know, that don't seem to mean
  5788  anything."
  5789  
  5790  "Have you got one of them papers, Tom?"
  5791  
  5792  "No."
  5793  
  5794  "Well then, how you going to find the marks?"
  5795  
  5796  "I don't want any marks. They always bury it under a ha'nted house or
  5797  on an island, or under a dead tree that's got one limb sticking out.
  5798  Well, we've tried Jackson's Island a little, and we can try it again
  5799  some time; and there's the old ha'nted house up the Still-House branch,
  5800  and there's lots of dead-limb trees--dead loads of 'em."
  5801  
  5802  "Is it under all of them?"
  5803  
  5804  "How you talk! No!"
  5805  
  5806  "Then how you going to know which one to go for?"
  5807  
  5808  "Go for all of 'em!"
  5809  
  5810  "Why, Tom, it'll take all summer."
  5811  
  5812  "Well, what of that? Suppose you find a brass pot with a hundred
  5813  dollars in it, all rusty and gray, or rotten chest full of di'monds.
  5814  How's that?"
  5815  
  5816  Huck's eyes glowed.
  5817  
  5818  "That's bully. Plenty bully enough for me. Just you gimme the hundred
  5819  dollars and I don't want no di'monds."
  5820  
  5821  "All right. But I bet you I ain't going to throw off on di'monds. Some
  5822  of 'em's worth twenty dollars apiece--there ain't any, hardly, but's
  5823  worth six bits or a dollar."
  5824  
  5825  "No! Is that so?"
  5826  
  5827  "Cert'nly--anybody'll tell you so. Hain't you ever seen one, Huck?"
  5828  
  5829  "Not as I remember."
  5830  
  5831  "Oh, kings have slathers of them."
  5832  
  5833  "Well, I don' know no kings, Tom."
  5834  
  5835  "I reckon you don't. But if you was to go to Europe you'd see a raft
  5836  of 'em hopping around."
  5837  
  5838  "Do they hop?"
  5839  
  5840  "Hop?--your granny! No!"
  5841  
  5842  "Well, what did you say they did, for?"
  5843  
  5844  "Shucks, I only meant you'd SEE 'em--not hopping, of course--what do
  5845  they want to hop for?--but I mean you'd just see 'em--scattered around,
  5846  you know, in a kind of a general way. Like that old humpbacked Richard."
  5847  
  5848  "Richard? What's his other name?"
  5849  
  5850  "He didn't have any other name. Kings don't have any but a given name."
  5851  
  5852  "No?"
  5853  
  5854  "But they don't."
  5855  
  5856  "Well, if they like it, Tom, all right; but I don't want to be a king
  5857  and have only just a given name, like a nigger. But say--where you
  5858  going to dig first?"
  5859  
  5860  "Well, I don't know. S'pose we tackle that old dead-limb tree on the
  5861  hill t'other side of Still-House branch?"
  5862  
  5863  "I'm agreed."
  5864  
  5865  So they got a crippled pick and a shovel, and set out on their
  5866  three-mile tramp. They arrived hot and panting, and threw themselves
  5867  down in the shade of a neighboring elm to rest and have a smoke.
  5868  
  5869  "I like this," said Tom.
  5870  
  5871  "So do I."
  5872  
  5873  "Say, Huck, if we find a treasure here, what you going to do with your
  5874  share?"
  5875  
  5876  "Well, I'll have pie and a glass of soda every day, and I'll go to
  5877  every circus that comes along. I bet I'll have a gay time."
  5878  
  5879  "Well, ain't you going to save any of it?"
  5880  
  5881  "Save it? What for?"
  5882  
  5883  "Why, so as to have something to live on, by and by."
  5884  
  5885  "Oh, that ain't any use. Pap would come back to thish-yer town some
  5886  day and get his claws on it if I didn't hurry up, and I tell you he'd
  5887  clean it out pretty quick. What you going to do with yourn, Tom?"
  5888  
  5889  "I'm going to buy a new drum, and a sure-'nough sword, and a red
  5890  necktie and a bull pup, and get married."
  5891  
  5892  "Married!"
  5893  
  5894  "That's it."
  5895  
  5896  "Tom, you--why, you ain't in your right mind."
  5897  
  5898  "Wait--you'll see."
  5899  
  5900  "Well, that's the foolishest thing you could do. Look at pap and my
  5901  mother. Fight! Why, they used to fight all the time. I remember, mighty
  5902  well."
  5903  
  5904  "That ain't anything. The girl I'm going to marry won't fight."
  5905  
  5906  "Tom, I reckon they're all alike. They'll all comb a body. Now you
  5907  better think 'bout this awhile. I tell you you better. What's the name
  5908  of the gal?"
  5909  
  5910  "It ain't a gal at all--it's a girl."
  5911  
  5912  "It's all the same, I reckon; some says gal, some says girl--both's
  5913  right, like enough. Anyway, what's her name, Tom?"
  5914  
  5915  "I'll tell you some time--not now."
  5916  
  5917  "All right--that'll do. Only if you get married I'll be more lonesomer
  5918  than ever."
  5919  
  5920  "No you won't. You'll come and live with me. Now stir out of this and
  5921  we'll go to digging."
  5922  
  5923  They worked and sweated for half an hour. No result. They toiled
  5924  another half-hour. Still no result. Huck said:
  5925  
  5926  "Do they always bury it as deep as this?"
  5927  
  5928  "Sometimes--not always. Not generally. I reckon we haven't got the
  5929  right place."
  5930  
  5931  So they chose a new spot and began again. The labor dragged a little,
  5932  but still they made progress. They pegged away in silence for some
  5933  time. Finally Huck leaned on his shovel, swabbed the beaded drops from
  5934  his brow with his sleeve, and said:
  5935  
  5936  "Where you going to dig next, after we get this one?"
  5937  
  5938  "I reckon maybe we'll tackle the old tree that's over yonder on
  5939  Cardiff Hill back of the widow's."
  5940  
  5941  "I reckon that'll be a good one. But won't the widow take it away from
  5942  us, Tom? It's on her land."
  5943  
  5944  "SHE take it away! Maybe she'd like to try it once. Whoever finds one
  5945  of these hid treasures, it belongs to him. It don't make any difference
  5946  whose land it's on."
  5947  
  5948  That was satisfactory. The work went on. By and by Huck said:
  5949  
  5950  "Blame it, we must be in the wrong place again. What do you think?"
  5951  
  5952  "It is mighty curious, Huck. I don't understand it. Sometimes witches
  5953  interfere. I reckon maybe that's what's the trouble now."
  5954  
  5955  "Shucks! Witches ain't got no power in the daytime."
  5956  
  5957  "Well, that's so. I didn't think of that. Oh, I know what the matter
  5958  is! What a blamed lot of fools we are! You got to find out where the
  5959  shadow of the limb falls at midnight, and that's where you dig!"
  5960  
  5961  "Then consound it, we've fooled away all this work for nothing. Now
  5962  hang it all, we got to come back in the night. It's an awful long way.
  5963  Can you get out?"
  5964  
  5965  "I bet I will. We've got to do it to-night, too, because if somebody
  5966  sees these holes they'll know in a minute what's here and they'll go
  5967  for it."
  5968  
  5969  "Well, I'll come around and maow to-night."
  5970  
  5971  "All right. Let's hide the tools in the bushes."
  5972  
  5973  The boys were there that night, about the appointed time. They sat in
  5974  the shadow waiting. It was a lonely place, and an hour made solemn by
  5975  old traditions. Spirits whispered in the rustling leaves, ghosts lurked
  5976  in the murky nooks, the deep baying of a hound floated up out of the
  5977  distance, an owl answered with his sepulchral note. The boys were
  5978  subdued by these solemnities, and talked little. By and by they judged
  5979  that twelve had come; they marked where the shadow fell, and began to
  5980  dig. Their hopes commenced to rise. Their interest grew stronger, and
  5981  their industry kept pace with it. The hole deepened and still deepened,
  5982  but every time their hearts jumped to hear the pick strike upon
  5983  something, they only suffered a new disappointment. It was only a stone
  5984  or a chunk. At last Tom said:
  5985  
  5986  "It ain't any use, Huck, we're wrong again."
  5987  
  5988  "Well, but we CAN'T be wrong. We spotted the shadder to a dot."
  5989  
  5990  "I know it, but then there's another thing."
  5991  
  5992  "What's that?".
  5993  
  5994  "Why, we only guessed at the time. Like enough it was too late or too
  5995  early."
  5996  
  5997  Huck dropped his shovel.
  5998  
  5999  "That's it," said he. "That's the very trouble. We got to give this
  6000  one up. We can't ever tell the right time, and besides this kind of
  6001  thing's too awful, here this time of night with witches and ghosts
  6002  a-fluttering around so. I feel as if something's behind me all the time;
  6003  and I'm afeard to turn around, becuz maybe there's others in front
  6004  a-waiting for a chance. I been creeping all over, ever since I got here."
  6005  
  6006  "Well, I've been pretty much so, too, Huck. They most always put in a
  6007  dead man when they bury a treasure under a tree, to look out for it."
  6008  
  6009  "Lordy!"
  6010  
  6011  "Yes, they do. I've always heard that."
  6012  
  6013  "Tom, I don't like to fool around much where there's dead people. A
  6014  body's bound to get into trouble with 'em, sure."
  6015  
  6016  "I don't like to stir 'em up, either. S'pose this one here was to
  6017  stick his skull out and say something!"
  6018  
  6019  "Don't Tom! It's awful."
  6020  
  6021  "Well, it just is. Huck, I don't feel comfortable a bit."
  6022  
  6023  "Say, Tom, let's give this place up, and try somewheres else."
  6024  
  6025  "All right, I reckon we better."
  6026  
  6027  "What'll it be?"
  6028  
  6029  Tom considered awhile; and then said:
  6030  
  6031  "The ha'nted house. That's it!"
  6032  
  6033  "Blame it, I don't like ha'nted houses, Tom. Why, they're a dern sight
  6034  worse'n dead people. Dead people might talk, maybe, but they don't come
  6035  sliding around in a shroud, when you ain't noticing, and peep over your
  6036  shoulder all of a sudden and grit their teeth, the way a ghost does. I
  6037  couldn't stand such a thing as that, Tom--nobody could."
  6038  
  6039  "Yes, but, Huck, ghosts don't travel around only at night. They won't
  6040  hender us from digging there in the daytime."
  6041  
  6042  "Well, that's so. But you know mighty well people don't go about that
  6043  ha'nted house in the day nor the night."
  6044  
  6045  "Well, that's mostly because they don't like to go where a man's been
  6046  murdered, anyway--but nothing's ever been seen around that house except
  6047  in the night--just some blue lights slipping by the windows--no regular
  6048  ghosts."
  6049  
  6050  "Well, where you see one of them blue lights flickering around, Tom,
  6051  you can bet there's a ghost mighty close behind it. It stands to
  6052  reason. Becuz you know that they don't anybody but ghosts use 'em."
  6053  
  6054  "Yes, that's so. But anyway they don't come around in the daytime, so
  6055  what's the use of our being afeard?"
  6056  
  6057  "Well, all right. We'll tackle the ha'nted house if you say so--but I
  6058  reckon it's taking chances."
  6059  
  6060  They had started down the hill by this time. There in the middle of
  6061  the moonlit valley below them stood the "ha'nted" house, utterly
  6062  isolated, its fences gone long ago, rank weeds smothering the very
  6063  doorsteps, the chimney crumbled to ruin, the window-sashes vacant, a
  6064  corner of the roof caved in. The boys gazed awhile, half expecting to
  6065  see a blue light flit past a window; then talking in a low tone, as
  6066  befitted the time and the circumstances, they struck far off to the
  6067  right, to give the haunted house a wide berth, and took their way
  6068  homeward through the woods that adorned the rearward side of Cardiff
  6069  Hill.
  6070  
  6071  
  6072  
  6073  CHAPTER XXVI
  6074  
  6075  ABOUT noon the next day the boys arrived at the dead tree; they had
  6076  come for their tools. Tom was impatient to go to the haunted house;
  6077  Huck was measurably so, also--but suddenly said:
  6078  
  6079  "Lookyhere, Tom, do you know what day it is?"
  6080  
  6081  Tom mentally ran over the days of the week, and then quickly lifted
  6082  his eyes with a startled look in them--
  6083  
  6084  "My! I never once thought of it, Huck!"
  6085  
  6086  "Well, I didn't neither, but all at once it popped onto me that it was
  6087  Friday."
  6088  
  6089  "Blame it, a body can't be too careful, Huck. We might 'a' got into an
  6090  awful scrape, tackling such a thing on a Friday."
  6091  
  6092  "MIGHT! Better say we WOULD! There's some lucky days, maybe, but
  6093  Friday ain't."
  6094  
  6095  "Any fool knows that. I don't reckon YOU was the first that found it
  6096  out, Huck."
  6097  
  6098  "Well, I never said I was, did I? And Friday ain't all, neither. I had
  6099  a rotten bad dream last night--dreampt about rats."
  6100  
  6101  "No! Sure sign of trouble. Did they fight?"
  6102  
  6103  "No."
  6104  
  6105  "Well, that's good, Huck. When they don't fight it's only a sign that
  6106  there's trouble around, you know. All we got to do is to look mighty
  6107  sharp and keep out of it. We'll drop this thing for to-day, and play.
  6108  Do you know Robin Hood, Huck?"
  6109  
  6110  "No. Who's Robin Hood?"
  6111  
  6112  "Why, he was one of the greatest men that was ever in England--and the
  6113  best. He was a robber."
  6114  
  6115  "Cracky, I wisht I was. Who did he rob?"
  6116  
  6117  "Only sheriffs and bishops and rich people and kings, and such like.
  6118  But he never bothered the poor. He loved 'em. He always divided up with
  6119  'em perfectly square."
  6120  
  6121  "Well, he must 'a' been a brick."
  6122  
  6123  "I bet you he was, Huck. Oh, he was the noblest man that ever was.
  6124  They ain't any such men now, I can tell you. He could lick any man in
  6125  England, with one hand tied behind him; and he could take his yew bow
  6126  and plug a ten-cent piece every time, a mile and a half."
  6127  
  6128  "What's a YEW bow?"
  6129  
  6130  "I don't know. It's some kind of a bow, of course. And if he hit that
  6131  dime only on the edge he would set down and cry--and curse. But we'll
  6132  play Robin Hood--it's nobby fun. I'll learn you."
  6133  
  6134  "I'm agreed."
  6135  
  6136  So they played Robin Hood all the afternoon, now and then casting a
  6137  yearning eye down upon the haunted house and passing a remark about the
  6138  morrow's prospects and possibilities there. As the sun began to sink
  6139  into the west they took their way homeward athwart the long shadows of
  6140  the trees and soon were buried from sight in the forests of Cardiff
  6141  Hill.
  6142  
  6143  On Saturday, shortly after noon, the boys were at the dead tree again.
  6144  They had a smoke and a chat in the shade, and then dug a little in
  6145  their last hole, not with great hope, but merely because Tom said there
  6146  were so many cases where people had given up a treasure after getting
  6147  down within six inches of it, and then somebody else had come along and
  6148  turned it up with a single thrust of a shovel. The thing failed this
  6149  time, however, so the boys shouldered their tools and went away feeling
  6150  that they had not trifled with fortune, but had fulfilled all the
  6151  requirements that belong to the business of treasure-hunting.
  6152  
  6153  When they reached the haunted house there was something so weird and
  6154  grisly about the dead silence that reigned there under the baking sun,
  6155  and something so depressing about the loneliness and desolation of the
  6156  place, that they were afraid, for a moment, to venture in. Then they
  6157  crept to the door and took a trembling peep. They saw a weed-grown,
  6158  floorless room, unplastered, an ancient fireplace, vacant windows, a
  6159  ruinous staircase; and here, there, and everywhere hung ragged and
  6160  abandoned cobwebs. They presently entered, softly, with quickened
  6161  pulses, talking in whispers, ears alert to catch the slightest sound,
  6162  and muscles tense and ready for instant retreat.
  6163  
  6164  In a little while familiarity modified their fears and they gave the
  6165  place a critical and interested examination, rather admiring their own
  6166  boldness, and wondering at it, too. Next they wanted to look up-stairs.
  6167  This was something like cutting off retreat, but they got to daring
  6168  each other, and of course there could be but one result--they threw
  6169  their tools into a corner and made the ascent. Up there were the same
  6170  signs of decay. In one corner they found a closet that promised
  6171  mystery, but the promise was a fraud--there was nothing in it. Their
  6172  courage was up now and well in hand. They were about to go down and
  6173  begin work when--
  6174  
  6175  "Sh!" said Tom.
  6176  
  6177  "What is it?" whispered Huck, blanching with fright.
  6178  
  6179  "Sh!... There!... Hear it?"
  6180  
  6181  "Yes!... Oh, my! Let's run!"
  6182  
  6183  "Keep still! Don't you budge! They're coming right toward the door."
  6184  
  6185  The boys stretched themselves upon the floor with their eyes to
  6186  knot-holes in the planking, and lay waiting, in a misery of fear.
  6187  
  6188  "They've stopped.... No--coming.... Here they are. Don't whisper
  6189  another word, Huck. My goodness, I wish I was out of this!"
  6190  
  6191  Two men entered. Each boy said to himself: "There's the old deaf and
  6192  dumb Spaniard that's been about town once or twice lately--never saw
  6193  t'other man before."
  6194  
  6195  "T'other" was a ragged, unkempt creature, with nothing very pleasant
  6196  in his face. The Spaniard was wrapped in a serape; he had bushy white
  6197  whiskers; long white hair flowed from under his sombrero, and he wore
  6198  green goggles. When they came in, "t'other" was talking in a low voice;
  6199  they sat down on the ground, facing the door, with their backs to the
  6200  wall, and the speaker continued his remarks. His manner became less
  6201  guarded and his words more distinct as he proceeded:
  6202  
  6203  "No," said he, "I've thought it all over, and I don't like it. It's
  6204  dangerous."
  6205  
  6206  "Dangerous!" grunted the "deaf and dumb" Spaniard--to the vast
  6207  surprise of the boys. "Milksop!"
  6208  
  6209  This voice made the boys gasp and quake. It was Injun Joe's! There was
  6210  silence for some time. Then Joe said:
  6211  
  6212  "What's any more dangerous than that job up yonder--but nothing's come
  6213  of it."
  6214  
  6215  "That's different. Away up the river so, and not another house about.
  6216  'Twon't ever be known that we tried, anyway, long as we didn't succeed."
  6217  
  6218  "Well, what's more dangerous than coming here in the daytime!--anybody
  6219  would suspicion us that saw us."
  6220  
  6221  "I know that. But there warn't any other place as handy after that
  6222  fool of a job. I want to quit this shanty. I wanted to yesterday, only
  6223  it warn't any use trying to stir out of here, with those infernal boys
  6224  playing over there on the hill right in full view."
  6225  
  6226  "Those infernal boys" quaked again under the inspiration of this
  6227  remark, and thought how lucky it was that they had remembered it was
  6228  Friday and concluded to wait a day. They wished in their hearts they
  6229  had waited a year.
  6230  
  6231  The two men got out some food and made a luncheon. After a long and
  6232  thoughtful silence, Injun Joe said:
  6233  
  6234  "Look here, lad--you go back up the river where you belong. Wait there
  6235  till you hear from me. I'll take the chances on dropping into this town
  6236  just once more, for a look. We'll do that 'dangerous' job after I've
  6237  spied around a little and think things look well for it. Then for
  6238  Texas! We'll leg it together!"
  6239  
  6240  This was satisfactory. Both men presently fell to yawning, and Injun
  6241  Joe said:
  6242  
  6243  "I'm dead for sleep! It's your turn to watch."
  6244  
  6245  He curled down in the weeds and soon began to snore. His comrade
  6246  stirred him once or twice and he became quiet. Presently the watcher
  6247  began to nod; his head drooped lower and lower, both men began to snore
  6248  now.
  6249  
  6250  The boys drew a long, grateful breath. Tom whispered:
  6251  
  6252  "Now's our chance--come!"
  6253  
  6254  Huck said:
  6255  
  6256  "I can't--I'd die if they was to wake."
  6257  
  6258  Tom urged--Huck held back. At last Tom rose slowly and softly, and
  6259  started alone. But the first step he made wrung such a hideous creak
  6260  from the crazy floor that he sank down almost dead with fright. He
  6261  never made a second attempt. The boys lay there counting the dragging
  6262  moments till it seemed to them that time must be done and eternity
  6263  growing gray; and then they were grateful to note that at last the sun
  6264  was setting.
  6265  
  6266  Now one snore ceased. Injun Joe sat up, stared around--smiled grimly
  6267  upon his comrade, whose head was drooping upon his knees--stirred him
  6268  up with his foot and said:
  6269  
  6270  "Here! YOU'RE a watchman, ain't you! All right, though--nothing's
  6271  happened."
  6272  
  6273  "My! have I been asleep?"
  6274  
  6275  "Oh, partly, partly. Nearly time for us to be moving, pard. What'll we
  6276  do with what little swag we've got left?"
  6277  
  6278  "I don't know--leave it here as we've always done, I reckon. No use to
  6279  take it away till we start south. Six hundred and fifty in silver's
  6280  something to carry."
  6281  
  6282  "Well--all right--it won't matter to come here once more."
  6283  
  6284  "No--but I'd say come in the night as we used to do--it's better."
  6285  
  6286  "Yes: but look here; it may be a good while before I get the right
  6287  chance at that job; accidents might happen; 'tain't in such a very good
  6288  place; we'll just regularly bury it--and bury it deep."
  6289  
  6290  "Good idea," said the comrade, who walked across the room, knelt down,
  6291  raised one of the rearward hearth-stones and took out a bag that
  6292  jingled pleasantly. He subtracted from it twenty or thirty dollars for
  6293  himself and as much for Injun Joe, and passed the bag to the latter,
  6294  who was on his knees in the corner, now, digging with his bowie-knife.
  6295  
  6296  The boys forgot all their fears, all their miseries in an instant.
  6297  With gloating eyes they watched every movement. Luck!--the splendor of
  6298  it was beyond all imagination! Six hundred dollars was money enough to
  6299  make half a dozen boys rich! Here was treasure-hunting under the
  6300  happiest auspices--there would not be any bothersome uncertainty as to
  6301  where to dig. They nudged each other every moment--eloquent nudges and
  6302  easily understood, for they simply meant--"Oh, but ain't you glad NOW
  6303  we're here!"
  6304  
  6305  Joe's knife struck upon something.
  6306  
  6307  "Hello!" said he.
  6308  
  6309  "What is it?" said his comrade.
  6310  
  6311  "Half-rotten plank--no, it's a box, I believe. Here--bear a hand and
  6312  we'll see what it's here for. Never mind, I've broke a hole."
  6313  
  6314  He reached his hand in and drew it out--
  6315  
  6316  "Man, it's money!"
  6317  
  6318  The two men examined the handful of coins. They were gold. The boys
  6319  above were as excited as themselves, and as delighted.
  6320  
  6321  Joe's comrade said:
  6322  
  6323  "We'll make quick work of this. There's an old rusty pick over amongst
  6324  the weeds in the corner the other side of the fireplace--I saw it a
  6325  minute ago."
  6326  
  6327  He ran and brought the boys' pick and shovel. Injun Joe took the pick,
  6328  looked it over critically, shook his head, muttered something to
  6329  himself, and then began to use it. The box was soon unearthed. It was
  6330  not very large; it was iron bound and had been very strong before the
  6331  slow years had injured it. The men contemplated the treasure awhile in
  6332  blissful silence.
  6333  
  6334  "Pard, there's thousands of dollars here," said Injun Joe.
  6335  
  6336  "'Twas always said that Murrel's gang used to be around here one
  6337  summer," the stranger observed.
  6338  
  6339  "I know it," said Injun Joe; "and this looks like it, I should say."
  6340  
  6341  "Now you won't need to do that job."
  6342  
  6343  The half-breed frowned. Said he:
  6344  
  6345  "You don't know me. Least you don't know all about that thing. 'Tain't
  6346  robbery altogether--it's REVENGE!" and a wicked light flamed in his
  6347  eyes. "I'll need your help in it. When it's finished--then Texas. Go
  6348  home to your Nance and your kids, and stand by till you hear from me."
  6349  
  6350  "Well--if you say so; what'll we do with this--bury it again?"
  6351  
  6352  "Yes. [Ravishing delight overhead.] NO! by the great Sachem, no!
  6353  [Profound distress overhead.] I'd nearly forgot. That pick had fresh
  6354  earth on it! [The boys were sick with terror in a moment.] What
  6355  business has a pick and a shovel here? What business with fresh earth
  6356  on them? Who brought them here--and where are they gone? Have you heard
  6357  anybody?--seen anybody? What! bury it again and leave them to come and
  6358  see the ground disturbed? Not exactly--not exactly. We'll take it to my
  6359  den."
  6360  
  6361  "Why, of course! Might have thought of that before. You mean Number
  6362  One?"
  6363  
  6364  "No--Number Two--under the cross. The other place is bad--too common."
  6365  
  6366  "All right. It's nearly dark enough to start."
  6367  
  6368  Injun Joe got up and went about from window to window cautiously
  6369  peeping out. Presently he said:
  6370  
  6371  "Who could have brought those tools here? Do you reckon they can be
  6372  up-stairs?"
  6373  
  6374  The boys' breath forsook them. Injun Joe put his hand on his knife,
  6375  halted a moment, undecided, and then turned toward the stairway. The
  6376  boys thought of the closet, but their strength was gone. The steps came
  6377  creaking up the stairs--the intolerable distress of the situation woke
  6378  the stricken resolution of the lads--they were about to spring for the
  6379  closet, when there was a crash of rotten timbers and Injun Joe landed
  6380  on the ground amid the debris of the ruined stairway. He gathered
  6381  himself up cursing, and his comrade said:
  6382  
  6383  "Now what's the use of all that? If it's anybody, and they're up
  6384  there, let them STAY there--who cares? If they want to jump down, now,
  6385  and get into trouble, who objects? It will be dark in fifteen minutes
  6386  --and then let them follow us if they want to. I'm willing. In my
  6387  opinion, whoever hove those things in here caught a sight of us and
  6388  took us for ghosts or devils or something. I'll bet they're running
  6389  yet."
  6390  
  6391  Joe grumbled awhile; then he agreed with his friend that what daylight
  6392  was left ought to be economized in getting things ready for leaving.
  6393  Shortly afterward they slipped out of the house in the deepening
  6394  twilight, and moved toward the river with their precious box.
  6395  
  6396  Tom and Huck rose up, weak but vastly relieved, and stared after them
  6397  through the chinks between the logs of the house. Follow? Not they.
  6398  They were content to reach ground again without broken necks, and take
  6399  the townward track over the hill. They did not talk much. They were too
  6400  much absorbed in hating themselves--hating the ill luck that made them
  6401  take the spade and the pick there. But for that, Injun Joe never would
  6402  have suspected. He would have hidden the silver with the gold to wait
  6403  there till his "revenge" was satisfied, and then he would have had the
  6404  misfortune to find that money turn up missing. Bitter, bitter luck that
  6405  the tools were ever brought there!
  6406  
  6407  They resolved to keep a lookout for that Spaniard when he should come
  6408  to town spying out for chances to do his revengeful job, and follow him
  6409  to "Number Two," wherever that might be. Then a ghastly thought
  6410  occurred to Tom.
  6411  
  6412  "Revenge? What if he means US, Huck!"
  6413  
  6414  "Oh, don't!" said Huck, nearly fainting.
  6415  
  6416  They talked it all over, and as they entered town they agreed to
  6417  believe that he might possibly mean somebody else--at least that he
  6418  might at least mean nobody but Tom, since only Tom had testified.
  6419  
  6420  Very, very small comfort it was to Tom to be alone in danger! Company
  6421  would be a palpable improvement, he thought.
  6422  
  6423  
  6424  
  6425  CHAPTER XXVII
  6426  
  6427  THE adventure of the day mightily tormented Tom's dreams that night.
  6428  Four times he had his hands on that rich treasure and four times it
  6429  wasted to nothingness in his fingers as sleep forsook him and
  6430  wakefulness brought back the hard reality of his misfortune. As he lay
  6431  in the early morning recalling the incidents of his great adventure, he
  6432  noticed that they seemed curiously subdued and far away--somewhat as if
  6433  they had happened in another world, or in a time long gone by. Then it
  6434  occurred to him that the great adventure itself must be a dream! There
  6435  was one very strong argument in favor of this idea--namely, that the
  6436  quantity of coin he had seen was too vast to be real. He had never seen
  6437  as much as fifty dollars in one mass before, and he was like all boys
  6438  of his age and station in life, in that he imagined that all references
  6439  to "hundreds" and "thousands" were mere fanciful forms of speech, and
  6440  that no such sums really existed in the world. He never had supposed
  6441  for a moment that so large a sum as a hundred dollars was to be found
  6442  in actual money in any one's possession. If his notions of hidden
  6443  treasure had been analyzed, they would have been found to consist of a
  6444  handful of real dimes and a bushel of vague, splendid, ungraspable
  6445  dollars.
  6446  
  6447  But the incidents of his adventure grew sensibly sharper and clearer
  6448  under the attrition of thinking them over, and so he presently found
  6449  himself leaning to the impression that the thing might not have been a
  6450  dream, after all. This uncertainty must be swept away. He would snatch
  6451  a hurried breakfast and go and find Huck. Huck was sitting on the
  6452  gunwale of a flatboat, listlessly dangling his feet in the water and
  6453  looking very melancholy. Tom concluded to let Huck lead up to the
  6454  subject. If he did not do it, then the adventure would be proved to
  6455  have been only a dream.
  6456  
  6457  "Hello, Huck!"
  6458  
  6459  "Hello, yourself."
  6460  
  6461  Silence, for a minute.
  6462  
  6463  "Tom, if we'd 'a' left the blame tools at the dead tree, we'd 'a' got
  6464  the money. Oh, ain't it awful!"
  6465  
  6466  "'Tain't a dream, then, 'tain't a dream! Somehow I most wish it was.
  6467  Dog'd if I don't, Huck."
  6468  
  6469  "What ain't a dream?"
  6470  
  6471  "Oh, that thing yesterday. I been half thinking it was."
  6472  
  6473  "Dream! If them stairs hadn't broke down you'd 'a' seen how much dream
  6474  it was! I've had dreams enough all night--with that patch-eyed Spanish
  6475  devil going for me all through 'em--rot him!"
  6476  
  6477  "No, not rot him. FIND him! Track the money!"
  6478  
  6479  "Tom, we'll never find him. A feller don't have only one chance for
  6480  such a pile--and that one's lost. I'd feel mighty shaky if I was to see
  6481  him, anyway."
  6482  
  6483  "Well, so'd I; but I'd like to see him, anyway--and track him out--to
  6484  his Number Two."
  6485  
  6486  "Number Two--yes, that's it. I been thinking 'bout that. But I can't
  6487  make nothing out of it. What do you reckon it is?"
  6488  
  6489  "I dono. It's too deep. Say, Huck--maybe it's the number of a house!"
  6490  
  6491  "Goody!... No, Tom, that ain't it. If it is, it ain't in this
  6492  one-horse town. They ain't no numbers here."
  6493  
  6494  "Well, that's so. Lemme think a minute. Here--it's the number of a
  6495  room--in a tavern, you know!"
  6496  
  6497  "Oh, that's the trick! They ain't only two taverns. We can find out
  6498  quick."
  6499  
  6500  "You stay here, Huck, till I come."
  6501  
  6502  Tom was off at once. He did not care to have Huck's company in public
  6503  places. He was gone half an hour. He found that in the best tavern, No.
  6504  2 had long been occupied by a young lawyer, and was still so occupied.
  6505  In the less ostentatious house, No. 2 was a mystery. The
  6506  tavern-keeper's young son said it was kept locked all the time, and he
  6507  never saw anybody go into it or come out of it except at night; he did
  6508  not know any particular reason for this state of things; had had some
  6509  little curiosity, but it was rather feeble; had made the most of the
  6510  mystery by entertaining himself with the idea that that room was
  6511  "ha'nted"; had noticed that there was a light in there the night before.
  6512  
  6513  "That's what I've found out, Huck. I reckon that's the very No. 2
  6514  we're after."
  6515  
  6516  "I reckon it is, Tom. Now what you going to do?"
  6517  
  6518  "Lemme think."
  6519  
  6520  Tom thought a long time. Then he said:
  6521  
  6522  "I'll tell you. The back door of that No. 2 is the door that comes out
  6523  into that little close alley between the tavern and the old rattle trap
  6524  of a brick store. Now you get hold of all the door-keys you can find,
  6525  and I'll nip all of auntie's, and the first dark night we'll go there
  6526  and try 'em. And mind you, keep a lookout for Injun Joe, because he
  6527  said he was going to drop into town and spy around once more for a
  6528  chance to get his revenge. If you see him, you just follow him; and if
  6529  he don't go to that No. 2, that ain't the place."
  6530  
  6531  "Lordy, I don't want to foller him by myself!"
  6532  
  6533  "Why, it'll be night, sure. He mightn't ever see you--and if he did,
  6534  maybe he'd never think anything."
  6535  
  6536  "Well, if it's pretty dark I reckon I'll track him. I dono--I dono.
  6537  I'll try."
  6538  
  6539  "You bet I'll follow him, if it's dark, Huck. Why, he might 'a' found
  6540  out he couldn't get his revenge, and be going right after that money."
  6541  
  6542  "It's so, Tom, it's so. I'll foller him; I will, by jingoes!"
  6543  
  6544  "Now you're TALKING! Don't you ever weaken, Huck, and I won't."
  6545  
  6546  
  6547  
  6548  CHAPTER XXVIII
  6549  
  6550  THAT night Tom and Huck were ready for their adventure. They hung
  6551  about the neighborhood of the tavern until after nine, one watching the
  6552  alley at a distance and the other the tavern door. Nobody entered the
  6553  alley or left it; nobody resembling the Spaniard entered or left the
  6554  tavern door. The night promised to be a fair one; so Tom went home with
  6555  the understanding that if a considerable degree of darkness came on,
  6556  Huck was to come and "maow," whereupon he would slip out and try the
  6557  keys. But the night remained clear, and Huck closed his watch and
  6558  retired to bed in an empty sugar hogshead about twelve.
  6559  
  6560  Tuesday the boys had the same ill luck. Also Wednesday. But Thursday
  6561  night promised better. Tom slipped out in good season with his aunt's
  6562  old tin lantern, and a large towel to blindfold it with. He hid the
  6563  lantern in Huck's sugar hogshead and the watch began. An hour before
  6564  midnight the tavern closed up and its lights (the only ones
  6565  thereabouts) were put out. No Spaniard had been seen. Nobody had
  6566  entered or left the alley. Everything was auspicious. The blackness of
  6567  darkness reigned, the perfect stillness was interrupted only by
  6568  occasional mutterings of distant thunder.
  6569  
  6570  Tom got his lantern, lit it in the hogshead, wrapped it closely in the
  6571  towel, and the two adventurers crept in the gloom toward the tavern.
  6572  Huck stood sentry and Tom felt his way into the alley. Then there was a
  6573  season of waiting anxiety that weighed upon Huck's spirits like a
  6574  mountain. He began to wish he could see a flash from the lantern--it
  6575  would frighten him, but it would at least tell him that Tom was alive
  6576  yet. It seemed hours since Tom had disappeared. Surely he must have
  6577  fainted; maybe he was dead; maybe his heart had burst under terror and
  6578  excitement. In his uneasiness Huck found himself drawing closer and
  6579  closer to the alley; fearing all sorts of dreadful things, and
  6580  momentarily expecting some catastrophe to happen that would take away
  6581  his breath. There was not much to take away, for he seemed only able to
  6582  inhale it by thimblefuls, and his heart would soon wear itself out, the
  6583  way it was beating. Suddenly there was a flash of light and Tom came
  6584  tearing by him: "Run!" said he; "run, for your life!"
  6585  
  6586  He needn't have repeated it; once was enough; Huck was making thirty
  6587  or forty miles an hour before the repetition was uttered. The boys
  6588  never stopped till they reached the shed of a deserted slaughter-house
  6589  at the lower end of the village. Just as they got within its shelter
  6590  the storm burst and the rain poured down. As soon as Tom got his breath
  6591  he said:
  6592  
  6593  "Huck, it was awful! I tried two of the keys, just as soft as I could;
  6594  but they seemed to make such a power of racket that I couldn't hardly
  6595  get my breath I was so scared. They wouldn't turn in the lock, either.
  6596  Well, without noticing what I was doing, I took hold of the knob, and
  6597  open comes the door! It warn't locked! I hopped in, and shook off the
  6598  towel, and, GREAT CAESAR'S GHOST!"
  6599  
  6600  "What!--what'd you see, Tom?"
  6601  
  6602  "Huck, I most stepped onto Injun Joe's hand!"
  6603  
  6604  "No!"
  6605  
  6606  "Yes! He was lying there, sound asleep on the floor, with his old
  6607  patch on his eye and his arms spread out."
  6608  
  6609  "Lordy, what did you do? Did he wake up?"
  6610  
  6611  "No, never budged. Drunk, I reckon. I just grabbed that towel and
  6612  started!"
  6613  
  6614  "I'd never 'a' thought of the towel, I bet!"
  6615  
  6616  "Well, I would. My aunt would make me mighty sick if I lost it."
  6617  
  6618  "Say, Tom, did you see that box?"
  6619  
  6620  "Huck, I didn't wait to look around. I didn't see the box, I didn't
  6621  see the cross. I didn't see anything but a bottle and a tin cup on the
  6622  floor by Injun Joe; yes, I saw two barrels and lots more bottles in the
  6623  room. Don't you see, now, what's the matter with that ha'nted room?"
  6624  
  6625  "How?"
  6626  
  6627  "Why, it's ha'nted with whiskey! Maybe ALL the Temperance Taverns have
  6628  got a ha'nted room, hey, Huck?"
  6629  
  6630  "Well, I reckon maybe that's so. Who'd 'a' thought such a thing? But
  6631  say, Tom, now's a mighty good time to get that box, if Injun Joe's
  6632  drunk."
  6633  
  6634  "It is, that! You try it!"
  6635  
  6636  Huck shuddered.
  6637  
  6638  "Well, no--I reckon not."
  6639  
  6640  "And I reckon not, Huck. Only one bottle alongside of Injun Joe ain't
  6641  enough. If there'd been three, he'd be drunk enough and I'd do it."
  6642  
  6643  There was a long pause for reflection, and then Tom said:
  6644  
  6645  "Lookyhere, Huck, less not try that thing any more till we know Injun
  6646  Joe's not in there. It's too scary. Now, if we watch every night, we'll
  6647  be dead sure to see him go out, some time or other, and then we'll
  6648  snatch that box quicker'n lightning."
  6649  
  6650  "Well, I'm agreed. I'll watch the whole night long, and I'll do it
  6651  every night, too, if you'll do the other part of the job."
  6652  
  6653  "All right, I will. All you got to do is to trot up Hooper Street a
  6654  block and maow--and if I'm asleep, you throw some gravel at the window
  6655  and that'll fetch me."
  6656  
  6657  "Agreed, and good as wheat!"
  6658  
  6659  "Now, Huck, the storm's over, and I'll go home. It'll begin to be
  6660  daylight in a couple of hours. You go back and watch that long, will
  6661  you?"
  6662  
  6663  "I said I would, Tom, and I will. I'll ha'nt that tavern every night
  6664  for a year! I'll sleep all day and I'll stand watch all night."
  6665  
  6666  "That's all right. Now, where you going to sleep?"
  6667  
  6668  "In Ben Rogers' hayloft. He lets me, and so does his pap's nigger man,
  6669  Uncle Jake. I tote water for Uncle Jake whenever he wants me to, and
  6670  any time I ask him he gives me a little something to eat if he can
  6671  spare it. That's a mighty good nigger, Tom. He likes me, becuz I don't
  6672  ever act as if I was above him. Sometime I've set right down and eat
  6673  WITH him. But you needn't tell that. A body's got to do things when
  6674  he's awful hungry he wouldn't want to do as a steady thing."
  6675  
  6676  "Well, if I don't want you in the daytime, I'll let you sleep. I won't
  6677  come bothering around. Any time you see something's up, in the night,
  6678  just skip right around and maow."
  6679  
  6680  
  6681  
  6682  CHAPTER XXIX
  6683  
  6684  THE first thing Tom heard on Friday morning was a glad piece of news
  6685  --Judge Thatcher's family had come back to town the night before. Both
  6686  Injun Joe and the treasure sunk into secondary importance for a moment,
  6687  and Becky took the chief place in the boy's interest. He saw her and
  6688  they had an exhausting good time playing "hi-spy" and "gully-keeper"
  6689  with a crowd of their school-mates. The day was completed and crowned
  6690  in a peculiarly satisfactory way: Becky teased her mother to appoint
  6691  the next day for the long-promised and long-delayed picnic, and she
  6692  consented. The child's delight was boundless; and Tom's not more
  6693  moderate. The invitations were sent out before sunset, and straightway
  6694  the young folks of the village were thrown into a fever of preparation
  6695  and pleasurable anticipation. Tom's excitement enabled him to keep
  6696  awake until a pretty late hour, and he had good hopes of hearing Huck's
  6697  "maow," and of having his treasure to astonish Becky and the picnickers
  6698  with, next day; but he was disappointed. No signal came that night.
  6699  
  6700  Morning came, eventually, and by ten or eleven o'clock a giddy and
  6701  rollicking company were gathered at Judge Thatcher's, and everything
  6702  was ready for a start. It was not the custom for elderly people to mar
  6703  the picnics with their presence. The children were considered safe
  6704  enough under the wings of a few young ladies of eighteen and a few
  6705  young gentlemen of twenty-three or thereabouts. The old steam ferryboat
  6706  was chartered for the occasion; presently the gay throng filed up the
  6707  main street laden with provision-baskets. Sid was sick and had to miss
  6708  the fun; Mary remained at home to entertain him. The last thing Mrs.
  6709  Thatcher said to Becky, was:
  6710  
  6711  "You'll not get back till late. Perhaps you'd better stay all night
  6712  with some of the girls that live near the ferry-landing, child."
  6713  
  6714  "Then I'll stay with Susy Harper, mamma."
  6715  
  6716  "Very well. And mind and behave yourself and don't be any trouble."
  6717  
  6718  Presently, as they tripped along, Tom said to Becky:
  6719  
  6720  "Say--I'll tell you what we'll do. 'Stead of going to Joe Harper's
  6721  we'll climb right up the hill and stop at the Widow Douglas'. She'll
  6722  have ice-cream! She has it most every day--dead loads of it. And she'll
  6723  be awful glad to have us."
  6724  
  6725  "Oh, that will be fun!"
  6726  
  6727  Then Becky reflected a moment and said:
  6728  
  6729  "But what will mamma say?"
  6730  
  6731  "How'll she ever know?"
  6732  
  6733  The girl turned the idea over in her mind, and said reluctantly:
  6734  
  6735  "I reckon it's wrong--but--"
  6736  
  6737  "But shucks! Your mother won't know, and so what's the harm? All she
  6738  wants is that you'll be safe; and I bet you she'd 'a' said go there if
  6739  she'd 'a' thought of it. I know she would!"
  6740  
  6741  The Widow Douglas' splendid hospitality was a tempting bait. It and
  6742  Tom's persuasions presently carried the day. So it was decided to say
  6743  nothing anybody about the night's programme. Presently it occurred to
  6744  Tom that maybe Huck might come this very night and give the signal. The
  6745  thought took a deal of the spirit out of his anticipations. Still he
  6746  could not bear to give up the fun at Widow Douglas'. And why should he
  6747  give it up, he reasoned--the signal did not come the night before, so
  6748  why should it be any more likely to come to-night? The sure fun of the
  6749  evening outweighed the uncertain treasure; and, boy-like, he determined
  6750  to yield to the stronger inclination and not allow himself to think of
  6751  the box of money another time that day.
  6752  
  6753  Three miles below town the ferryboat stopped at the mouth of a woody
  6754  hollow and tied up. The crowd swarmed ashore and soon the forest
  6755  distances and craggy heights echoed far and near with shoutings and
  6756  laughter. All the different ways of getting hot and tired were gone
  6757  through with, and by-and-by the rovers straggled back to camp fortified
  6758  with responsible appetites, and then the destruction of the good things
  6759  began. After the feast there was a refreshing season of rest and chat
  6760  in the shade of spreading oaks. By-and-by somebody shouted:
  6761  
  6762  "Who's ready for the cave?"
  6763  
  6764  Everybody was. Bundles of candles were procured, and straightway there
  6765  was a general scamper up the hill. The mouth of the cave was up the
  6766  hillside--an opening shaped like a letter A. Its massive oaken door
  6767  stood unbarred. Within was a small chamber, chilly as an ice-house, and
  6768  walled by Nature with solid limestone that was dewy with a cold sweat.
  6769  It was romantic and mysterious to stand here in the deep gloom and look
  6770  out upon the green valley shining in the sun. But the impressiveness of
  6771  the situation quickly wore off, and the romping began again. The moment
  6772  a candle was lighted there was a general rush upon the owner of it; a
  6773  struggle and a gallant defence followed, but the candle was soon
  6774  knocked down or blown out, and then there was a glad clamor of laughter
  6775  and a new chase. But all things have an end. By-and-by the procession
  6776  went filing down the steep descent of the main avenue, the flickering
  6777  rank of lights dimly revealing the lofty walls of rock almost to their
  6778  point of junction sixty feet overhead. This main avenue was not more
  6779  than eight or ten feet wide. Every few steps other lofty and still
  6780  narrower crevices branched from it on either hand--for McDougal's cave
  6781  was but a vast labyrinth of crooked aisles that ran into each other and
  6782  out again and led nowhere. It was said that one might wander days and
  6783  nights together through its intricate tangle of rifts and chasms, and
  6784  never find the end of the cave; and that he might go down, and down,
  6785  and still down, into the earth, and it was just the same--labyrinth
  6786  under labyrinth, and no end to any of them. No man "knew" the cave.
  6787  That was an impossible thing. Most of the young men knew a portion of
  6788  it, and it was not customary to venture much beyond this known portion.
  6789  Tom Sawyer knew as much of the cave as any one.
  6790  
  6791  The procession moved along the main avenue some three-quarters of a
  6792  mile, and then groups and couples began to slip aside into branch
  6793  avenues, fly along the dismal corridors, and take each other by
  6794  surprise at points where the corridors joined again. Parties were able
  6795  to elude each other for the space of half an hour without going beyond
  6796  the "known" ground.
  6797  
  6798  By-and-by, one group after another came straggling back to the mouth
  6799  of the cave, panting, hilarious, smeared from head to foot with tallow
  6800  drippings, daubed with clay, and entirely delighted with the success of
  6801  the day. Then they were astonished to find that they had been taking no
  6802  note of time and that night was about at hand. The clanging bell had
  6803  been calling for half an hour. However, this sort of close to the day's
  6804  adventures was romantic and therefore satisfactory. When the ferryboat
  6805  with her wild freight pushed into the stream, nobody cared sixpence for
  6806  the wasted time but the captain of the craft.
  6807  
  6808  Huck was already upon his watch when the ferryboat's lights went
  6809  glinting past the wharf. He heard no noise on board, for the young
  6810  people were as subdued and still as people usually are who are nearly
  6811  tired to death. He wondered what boat it was, and why she did not stop
  6812  at the wharf--and then he dropped her out of his mind and put his
  6813  attention upon his business. The night was growing cloudy and dark. Ten
  6814  o'clock came, and the noise of vehicles ceased, scattered lights began
  6815  to wink out, all straggling foot-passengers disappeared, the village
  6816  betook itself to its slumbers and left the small watcher alone with the
  6817  silence and the ghosts. Eleven o'clock came, and the tavern lights were
  6818  put out; darkness everywhere, now. Huck waited what seemed a weary long
  6819  time, but nothing happened. His faith was weakening. Was there any use?
  6820  Was there really any use? Why not give it up and turn in?
  6821  
  6822  A noise fell upon his ear. He was all attention in an instant. The
  6823  alley door closed softly. He sprang to the corner of the brick store.
  6824  The next moment two men brushed by him, and one seemed to have
  6825  something under his arm. It must be that box! So they were going to
  6826  remove the treasure. Why call Tom now? It would be absurd--the men
  6827  would get away with the box and never be found again. No, he would
  6828  stick to their wake and follow them; he would trust to the darkness for
  6829  security from discovery. So communing with himself, Huck stepped out
  6830  and glided along behind the men, cat-like, with bare feet, allowing
  6831  them to keep just far enough ahead not to be invisible.
  6832  
  6833  They moved up the river street three blocks, then turned to the left
  6834  up a cross-street. They went straight ahead, then, until they came to
  6835  the path that led up Cardiff Hill; this they took. They passed by the
  6836  old Welshman's house, half-way up the hill, without hesitating, and
  6837  still climbed upward. Good, thought Huck, they will bury it in the old
  6838  quarry. But they never stopped at the quarry. They passed on, up the
  6839  summit. They plunged into the narrow path between the tall sumach
  6840  bushes, and were at once hidden in the gloom. Huck closed up and
  6841  shortened his distance, now, for they would never be able to see him.
  6842  He trotted along awhile; then slackened his pace, fearing he was
  6843  gaining too fast; moved on a piece, then stopped altogether; listened;
  6844  no sound; none, save that he seemed to hear the beating of his own
  6845  heart. The hooting of an owl came over the hill--ominous sound! But no
  6846  footsteps. Heavens, was everything lost! He was about to spring with
  6847  winged feet, when a man cleared his throat not four feet from him!
  6848  Huck's heart shot into his throat, but he swallowed it again; and then
  6849  he stood there shaking as if a dozen agues had taken charge of him at
  6850  once, and so weak that he thought he must surely fall to the ground. He
  6851  knew where he was. He knew he was within five steps of the stile
  6852  leading into Widow Douglas' grounds. Very well, he thought, let them
  6853  bury it there; it won't be hard to find.
  6854  
  6855  Now there was a voice--a very low voice--Injun Joe's:
  6856  
  6857  "Damn her, maybe she's got company--there's lights, late as it is."
  6858  
  6859  "I can't see any."
  6860  
  6861  This was that stranger's voice--the stranger of the haunted house. A
  6862  deadly chill went to Huck's heart--this, then, was the "revenge" job!
  6863  His thought was, to fly. Then he remembered that the Widow Douglas had
  6864  been kind to him more than once, and maybe these men were going to
  6865  murder her. He wished he dared venture to warn her; but he knew he
  6866  didn't dare--they might come and catch him. He thought all this and
  6867  more in the moment that elapsed between the stranger's remark and Injun
  6868  Joe's next--which was--
  6869  
  6870  "Because the bush is in your way. Now--this way--now you see, don't
  6871  you?"
  6872  
  6873  "Yes. Well, there IS company there, I reckon. Better give it up."
  6874  
  6875  "Give it up, and I just leaving this country forever! Give it up and
  6876  maybe never have another chance. I tell you again, as I've told you
  6877  before, I don't care for her swag--you may have it. But her husband was
  6878  rough on me--many times he was rough on me--and mainly he was the
  6879  justice of the peace that jugged me for a vagrant. And that ain't all.
  6880  It ain't a millionth part of it! He had me HORSEWHIPPED!--horsewhipped
  6881  in front of the jail, like a nigger!--with all the town looking on!
  6882  HORSEWHIPPED!--do you understand? He took advantage of me and died. But
  6883  I'll take it out of HER."
  6884  
  6885  "Oh, don't kill her! Don't do that!"
  6886  
  6887  "Kill? Who said anything about killing? I would kill HIM if he was
  6888  here; but not her. When you want to get revenge on a woman you don't
  6889  kill her--bosh! you go for her looks. You slit her nostrils--you notch
  6890  her ears like a sow!"
  6891  
  6892  "By God, that's--"
  6893  
  6894  "Keep your opinion to yourself! It will be safest for you. I'll tie
  6895  her to the bed. If she bleeds to death, is that my fault? I'll not cry,
  6896  if she does. My friend, you'll help me in this thing--for MY sake
  6897  --that's why you're here--I mightn't be able alone. If you flinch, I'll
  6898  kill you. Do you understand that? And if I have to kill you, I'll kill
  6899  her--and then I reckon nobody'll ever know much about who done this
  6900  business."
  6901  
  6902  "Well, if it's got to be done, let's get at it. The quicker the
  6903  better--I'm all in a shiver."
  6904  
  6905  "Do it NOW? And company there? Look here--I'll get suspicious of you,
  6906  first thing you know. No--we'll wait till the lights are out--there's
  6907  no hurry."
  6908  
  6909  Huck felt that a silence was going to ensue--a thing still more awful
  6910  than any amount of murderous talk; so he held his breath and stepped
  6911  gingerly back; planted his foot carefully and firmly, after balancing,
  6912  one-legged, in a precarious way and almost toppling over, first on one
  6913  side and then on the other. He took another step back, with the same
  6914  elaboration and the same risks; then another and another, and--a twig
  6915  snapped under his foot! His breath stopped and he listened. There was
  6916  no sound--the stillness was perfect. His gratitude was measureless. Now
  6917  he turned in his tracks, between the walls of sumach bushes--turned
  6918  himself as carefully as if he were a ship--and then stepped quickly but
  6919  cautiously along. When he emerged at the quarry he felt secure, and so
  6920  he picked up his nimble heels and flew. Down, down he sped, till he
  6921  reached the Welshman's. He banged at the door, and presently the heads
  6922  of the old man and his two stalwart sons were thrust from windows.
  6923  
  6924  "What's the row there? Who's banging? What do you want?"
  6925  
  6926  "Let me in--quick! I'll tell everything."
  6927  
  6928  "Why, who are you?"
  6929  
  6930  "Huckleberry Finn--quick, let me in!"
  6931  
  6932  "Huckleberry Finn, indeed! It ain't a name to open many doors, I
  6933  judge! But let him in, lads, and let's see what's the trouble."
  6934  
  6935  "Please don't ever tell I told you," were Huck's first words when he
  6936  got in. "Please don't--I'd be killed, sure--but the widow's been good
  6937  friends to me sometimes, and I want to tell--I WILL tell if you'll
  6938  promise you won't ever say it was me."
  6939  
  6940  "By George, he HAS got something to tell, or he wouldn't act so!"
  6941  exclaimed the old man; "out with it and nobody here'll ever tell, lad."
  6942  
  6943  Three minutes later the old man and his sons, well armed, were up the
  6944  hill, and just entering the sumach path on tiptoe, their weapons in
  6945  their hands. Huck accompanied them no further. He hid behind a great
  6946  bowlder and fell to listening. There was a lagging, anxious silence,
  6947  and then all of a sudden there was an explosion of firearms and a cry.
  6948  
  6949  Huck waited for no particulars. He sprang away and sped down the hill
  6950  as fast as his legs could carry him.
  6951  
  6952  
  6953  
  6954  CHAPTER XXX
  6955  
  6956  AS the earliest suspicion of dawn appeared on Sunday morning, Huck
  6957  came groping up the hill and rapped gently at the old Welshman's door.
  6958  The inmates were asleep, but it was a sleep that was set on a
  6959  hair-trigger, on account of the exciting episode of the night. A call
  6960  came from a window:
  6961  
  6962  "Who's there!"
  6963  
  6964  Huck's scared voice answered in a low tone:
  6965  
  6966  "Please let me in! It's only Huck Finn!"
  6967  
  6968  "It's a name that can open this door night or day, lad!--and welcome!"
  6969  
  6970  These were strange words to the vagabond boy's ears, and the
  6971  pleasantest he had ever heard. He could not recollect that the closing
  6972  word had ever been applied in his case before. The door was quickly
  6973  unlocked, and he entered. Huck was given a seat and the old man and his
  6974  brace of tall sons speedily dressed themselves.
  6975  
  6976  "Now, my boy, I hope you're good and hungry, because breakfast will be
  6977  ready as soon as the sun's up, and we'll have a piping hot one, too
  6978  --make yourself easy about that! I and the boys hoped you'd turn up and
  6979  stop here last night."
  6980  
  6981  "I was awful scared," said Huck, "and I run. I took out when the
  6982  pistols went off, and I didn't stop for three mile. I've come now becuz
  6983  I wanted to know about it, you know; and I come before daylight becuz I
  6984  didn't want to run across them devils, even if they was dead."
  6985  
  6986  "Well, poor chap, you do look as if you'd had a hard night of it--but
  6987  there's a bed here for you when you've had your breakfast. No, they
  6988  ain't dead, lad--we are sorry enough for that. You see we knew right
  6989  where to put our hands on them, by your description; so we crept along
  6990  on tiptoe till we got within fifteen feet of them--dark as a cellar
  6991  that sumach path was--and just then I found I was going to sneeze. It
  6992  was the meanest kind of luck! I tried to keep it back, but no use
  6993  --'twas bound to come, and it did come! I was in the lead with my pistol
  6994  raised, and when the sneeze started those scoundrels a-rustling to get
  6995  out of the path, I sung out, 'Fire boys!' and blazed away at the place
  6996  where the rustling was. So did the boys. But they were off in a jiffy,
  6997  those villains, and we after them, down through the woods. I judge we
  6998  never touched them. They fired a shot apiece as they started, but their
  6999  bullets whizzed by and didn't do us any harm. As soon as we lost the
  7000  sound of their feet we quit chasing, and went down and stirred up the
  7001  constables. They got a posse together, and went off to guard the river
  7002  bank, and as soon as it is light the sheriff and a gang are going to
  7003  beat up the woods. My boys will be with them presently. I wish we had
  7004  some sort of description of those rascals--'twould help a good deal.
  7005  But you couldn't see what they were like, in the dark, lad, I suppose?"
  7006  
  7007  "Oh yes; I saw them down-town and follered them."
  7008  
  7009  "Splendid! Describe them--describe them, my boy!"
  7010  
  7011  "One's the old deaf and dumb Spaniard that's ben around here once or
  7012  twice, and t'other's a mean-looking, ragged--"
  7013  
  7014  "That's enough, lad, we know the men! Happened on them in the woods
  7015  back of the widow's one day, and they slunk away. Off with you, boys,
  7016  and tell the sheriff--get your breakfast to-morrow morning!"
  7017  
  7018  The Welshman's sons departed at once. As they were leaving the room
  7019  Huck sprang up and exclaimed:
  7020  
  7021  "Oh, please don't tell ANYbody it was me that blowed on them! Oh,
  7022  please!"
  7023  
  7024  "All right if you say it, Huck, but you ought to have the credit of
  7025  what you did."
  7026  
  7027  "Oh no, no! Please don't tell!"
  7028  
  7029  When the young men were gone, the old Welshman said:
  7030  
  7031  "They won't tell--and I won't. But why don't you want it known?"
  7032  
  7033  Huck would not explain, further than to say that he already knew too
  7034  much about one of those men and would not have the man know that he
  7035  knew anything against him for the whole world--he would be killed for
  7036  knowing it, sure.
  7037  
  7038  The old man promised secrecy once more, and said:
  7039  
  7040  "How did you come to follow these fellows, lad? Were they looking
  7041  suspicious?"
  7042  
  7043  Huck was silent while he framed a duly cautious reply. Then he said:
  7044  
  7045  "Well, you see, I'm a kind of a hard lot,--least everybody says so,
  7046  and I don't see nothing agin it--and sometimes I can't sleep much, on
  7047  account of thinking about it and sort of trying to strike out a new way
  7048  of doing. That was the way of it last night. I couldn't sleep, and so I
  7049  come along up-street 'bout midnight, a-turning it all over, and when I
  7050  got to that old shackly brick store by the Temperance Tavern, I backed
  7051  up agin the wall to have another think. Well, just then along comes
  7052  these two chaps slipping along close by me, with something under their
  7053  arm, and I reckoned they'd stole it. One was a-smoking, and t'other one
  7054  wanted a light; so they stopped right before me and the cigars lit up
  7055  their faces and I see that the big one was the deaf and dumb Spaniard,
  7056  by his white whiskers and the patch on his eye, and t'other one was a
  7057  rusty, ragged-looking devil."
  7058  
  7059  "Could you see the rags by the light of the cigars?"
  7060  
  7061  This staggered Huck for a moment. Then he said:
  7062  
  7063  "Well, I don't know--but somehow it seems as if I did."
  7064  
  7065  "Then they went on, and you--"
  7066  
  7067  "Follered 'em--yes. That was it. I wanted to see what was up--they
  7068  sneaked along so. I dogged 'em to the widder's stile, and stood in the
  7069  dark and heard the ragged one beg for the widder, and the Spaniard
  7070  swear he'd spile her looks just as I told you and your two--"
  7071  
  7072  "What! The DEAF AND DUMB man said all that!"
  7073  
  7074  Huck had made another terrible mistake! He was trying his best to keep
  7075  the old man from getting the faintest hint of who the Spaniard might
  7076  be, and yet his tongue seemed determined to get him into trouble in
  7077  spite of all he could do. He made several efforts to creep out of his
  7078  scrape, but the old man's eye was upon him and he made blunder after
  7079  blunder. Presently the Welshman said:
  7080  
  7081  "My boy, don't be afraid of me. I wouldn't hurt a hair of your head
  7082  for all the world. No--I'd protect you--I'd protect you. This Spaniard
  7083  is not deaf and dumb; you've let that slip without intending it; you
  7084  can't cover that up now. You know something about that Spaniard that
  7085  you want to keep dark. Now trust me--tell me what it is, and trust me
  7086  --I won't betray you."
  7087  
  7088  Huck looked into the old man's honest eyes a moment, then bent over
  7089  and whispered in his ear:
  7090  
  7091  "'Tain't a Spaniard--it's Injun Joe!"
  7092  
  7093  The Welshman almost jumped out of his chair. In a moment he said:
  7094  
  7095  "It's all plain enough, now. When you talked about notching ears and
  7096  slitting noses I judged that that was your own embellishment, because
  7097  white men don't take that sort of revenge. But an Injun! That's a
  7098  different matter altogether."
  7099  
  7100  During breakfast the talk went on, and in the course of it the old man
  7101  said that the last thing which he and his sons had done, before going
  7102  to bed, was to get a lantern and examine the stile and its vicinity for
  7103  marks of blood. They found none, but captured a bulky bundle of--
  7104  
  7105  "Of WHAT?"
  7106  
  7107  If the words had been lightning they could not have leaped with a more
  7108  stunning suddenness from Huck's blanched lips. His eyes were staring
  7109  wide, now, and his breath suspended--waiting for the answer. The
  7110  Welshman started--stared in return--three seconds--five seconds--ten
  7111  --then replied:
  7112  
  7113  "Of burglar's tools. Why, what's the MATTER with you?"
  7114  
  7115  Huck sank back, panting gently, but deeply, unutterably grateful. The
  7116  Welshman eyed him gravely, curiously--and presently said:
  7117  
  7118  "Yes, burglar's tools. That appears to relieve you a good deal. But
  7119  what did give you that turn? What were YOU expecting we'd found?"
  7120  
  7121  Huck was in a close place--the inquiring eye was upon him--he would
  7122  have given anything for material for a plausible answer--nothing
  7123  suggested itself--the inquiring eye was boring deeper and deeper--a
  7124  senseless reply offered--there was no time to weigh it, so at a venture
  7125  he uttered it--feebly:
  7126  
  7127  "Sunday-school books, maybe."
  7128  
  7129  Poor Huck was too distressed to smile, but the old man laughed loud
  7130  and joyously, shook up the details of his anatomy from head to foot,
  7131  and ended by saying that such a laugh was money in a-man's pocket,
  7132  because it cut down the doctor's bill like everything. Then he added:
  7133  
  7134  "Poor old chap, you're white and jaded--you ain't well a bit--no
  7135  wonder you're a little flighty and off your balance. But you'll come
  7136  out of it. Rest and sleep will fetch you out all right, I hope."
  7137  
  7138  Huck was irritated to think he had been such a goose and betrayed such
  7139  a suspicious excitement, for he had dropped the idea that the parcel
  7140  brought from the tavern was the treasure, as soon as he had heard the
  7141  talk at the widow's stile. He had only thought it was not the treasure,
  7142  however--he had not known that it wasn't--and so the suggestion of a
  7143  captured bundle was too much for his self-possession. But on the whole
  7144  he felt glad the little episode had happened, for now he knew beyond
  7145  all question that that bundle was not THE bundle, and so his mind was
  7146  at rest and exceedingly comfortable. In fact, everything seemed to be
  7147  drifting just in the right direction, now; the treasure must be still
  7148  in No. 2, the men would be captured and jailed that day, and he and Tom
  7149  could seize the gold that night without any trouble or any fear of
  7150  interruption.
  7151  
  7152  Just as breakfast was completed there was a knock at the door. Huck
  7153  jumped for a hiding-place, for he had no mind to be connected even
  7154  remotely with the late event. The Welshman admitted several ladies and
  7155  gentlemen, among them the Widow Douglas, and noticed that groups of
  7156  citizens were climbing up the hill--to stare at the stile. So the news
  7157  had spread. The Welshman had to tell the story of the night to the
  7158  visitors. The widow's gratitude for her preservation was outspoken.
  7159  
  7160  "Don't say a word about it, madam. There's another that you're more
  7161  beholden to than you are to me and my boys, maybe, but he don't allow
  7162  me to tell his name. We wouldn't have been there but for him."
  7163  
  7164  Of course this excited a curiosity so vast that it almost belittled
  7165  the main matter--but the Welshman allowed it to eat into the vitals of
  7166  his visitors, and through them be transmitted to the whole town, for he
  7167  refused to part with his secret. When all else had been learned, the
  7168  widow said:
  7169  
  7170  "I went to sleep reading in bed and slept straight through all that
  7171  noise. Why didn't you come and wake me?"
  7172  
  7173  "We judged it warn't worth while. Those fellows warn't likely to come
  7174  again--they hadn't any tools left to work with, and what was the use of
  7175  waking you up and scaring you to death? My three negro men stood guard
  7176  at your house all the rest of the night. They've just come back."
  7177  
  7178  More visitors came, and the story had to be told and retold for a
  7179  couple of hours more.
  7180  
  7181  There was no Sabbath-school during day-school vacation, but everybody
  7182  was early at church. The stirring event was well canvassed. News came
  7183  that not a sign of the two villains had been yet discovered. When the
  7184  sermon was finished, Judge Thatcher's wife dropped alongside of Mrs.
  7185  Harper as she moved down the aisle with the crowd and said:
  7186  
  7187  "Is my Becky going to sleep all day? I just expected she would be
  7188  tired to death."
  7189  
  7190  "Your Becky?"
  7191  
  7192  "Yes," with a startled look--"didn't she stay with you last night?"
  7193  
  7194  "Why, no."
  7195  
  7196  Mrs. Thatcher turned pale, and sank into a pew, just as Aunt Polly,
  7197  talking briskly with a friend, passed by. Aunt Polly said:
  7198  
  7199  "Good-morning, Mrs. Thatcher. Good-morning, Mrs. Harper. I've got a
  7200  boy that's turned up missing. I reckon my Tom stayed at your house last
  7201  night--one of you. And now he's afraid to come to church. I've got to
  7202  settle with him."
  7203  
  7204  Mrs. Thatcher shook her head feebly and turned paler than ever.
  7205  
  7206  "He didn't stay with us," said Mrs. Harper, beginning to look uneasy.
  7207  A marked anxiety came into Aunt Polly's face.
  7208  
  7209  "Joe Harper, have you seen my Tom this morning?"
  7210  
  7211  "No'm."
  7212  
  7213  "When did you see him last?"
  7214  
  7215  Joe tried to remember, but was not sure he could say. The people had
  7216  stopped moving out of church. Whispers passed along, and a boding
  7217  uneasiness took possession of every countenance. Children were
  7218  anxiously questioned, and young teachers. They all said they had not
  7219  noticed whether Tom and Becky were on board the ferryboat on the
  7220  homeward trip; it was dark; no one thought of inquiring if any one was
  7221  missing. One young man finally blurted out his fear that they were
  7222  still in the cave! Mrs. Thatcher swooned away. Aunt Polly fell to
  7223  crying and wringing her hands.
  7224  
  7225  The alarm swept from lip to lip, from group to group, from street to
  7226  street, and within five minutes the bells were wildly clanging and the
  7227  whole town was up! The Cardiff Hill episode sank into instant
  7228  insignificance, the burglars were forgotten, horses were saddled,
  7229  skiffs were manned, the ferryboat ordered out, and before the horror
  7230  was half an hour old, two hundred men were pouring down highroad and
  7231  river toward the cave.
  7232  
  7233  All the long afternoon the village seemed empty and dead. Many women
  7234  visited Aunt Polly and Mrs. Thatcher and tried to comfort them. They
  7235  cried with them, too, and that was still better than words. All the
  7236  tedious night the town waited for news; but when the morning dawned at
  7237  last, all the word that came was, "Send more candles--and send food."
  7238  Mrs. Thatcher was almost crazed; and Aunt Polly, also. Judge Thatcher
  7239  sent messages of hope and encouragement from the cave, but they
  7240  conveyed no real cheer.
  7241  
  7242  The old Welshman came home toward daylight, spattered with
  7243  candle-grease, smeared with clay, and almost worn out. He found Huck
  7244  still in the bed that had been provided for him, and delirious with
  7245  fever. The physicians were all at the cave, so the Widow Douglas came
  7246  and took charge of the patient. She said she would do her best by him,
  7247  because, whether he was good, bad, or indifferent, he was the Lord's,
  7248  and nothing that was the Lord's was a thing to be neglected. The
  7249  Welshman said Huck had good spots in him, and the widow said:
  7250  
  7251  "You can depend on it. That's the Lord's mark. He don't leave it off.
  7252  He never does. Puts it somewhere on every creature that comes from his
  7253  hands."
  7254  
  7255  Early in the forenoon parties of jaded men began to straggle into the
  7256  village, but the strongest of the citizens continued searching. All the
  7257  news that could be gained was that remotenesses of the cavern were
  7258  being ransacked that had never been visited before; that every corner
  7259  and crevice was going to be thoroughly searched; that wherever one
  7260  wandered through the maze of passages, lights were to be seen flitting
  7261  hither and thither in the distance, and shoutings and pistol-shots sent
  7262  their hollow reverberations to the ear down the sombre aisles. In one
  7263  place, far from the section usually traversed by tourists, the names
  7264  "BECKY & TOM" had been found traced upon the rocky wall with
  7265  candle-smoke, and near at hand a grease-soiled bit of ribbon. Mrs.
  7266  Thatcher recognized the ribbon and cried over it. She said it was the
  7267  last relic she should ever have of her child; and that no other memorial
  7268  of her could ever be so precious, because this one parted latest from
  7269  the living body before the awful death came. Some said that now and
  7270  then, in the cave, a far-away speck of light would glimmer, and then a
  7271  glorious shout would burst forth and a score of men go trooping down the
  7272  echoing aisle--and then a sickening disappointment always followed; the
  7273  children were not there; it was only a searcher's light.
  7274  
  7275  Three dreadful days and nights dragged their tedious hours along, and
  7276  the village sank into a hopeless stupor. No one had heart for anything.
  7277  The accidental discovery, just made, that the proprietor of the
  7278  Temperance Tavern kept liquor on his premises, scarcely fluttered the
  7279  public pulse, tremendous as the fact was. In a lucid interval, Huck
  7280  feebly led up to the subject of taverns, and finally asked--dimly
  7281  dreading the worst--if anything had been discovered at the Temperance
  7282  Tavern since he had been ill.
  7283  
  7284  "Yes," said the widow.
  7285  
  7286  Huck started up in bed, wild-eyed:
  7287  
  7288  "What? What was it?"
  7289  
  7290  "Liquor!--and the place has been shut up. Lie down, child--what a turn
  7291  you did give me!"
  7292  
  7293  "Only tell me just one thing--only just one--please! Was it Tom Sawyer
  7294  that found it?"
  7295  
  7296  The widow burst into tears. "Hush, hush, child, hush! I've told you
  7297  before, you must NOT talk. You are very, very sick!"
  7298  
  7299  Then nothing but liquor had been found; there would have been a great
  7300  powwow if it had been the gold. So the treasure was gone forever--gone
  7301  forever! But what could she be crying about? Curious that she should
  7302  cry.
  7303  
  7304  These thoughts worked their dim way through Huck's mind, and under the
  7305  weariness they gave him he fell asleep. The widow said to herself:
  7306  
  7307  "There--he's asleep, poor wreck. Tom Sawyer find it! Pity but somebody
  7308  could find Tom Sawyer! Ah, there ain't many left, now, that's got hope
  7309  enough, or strength enough, either, to go on searching."
  7310  
  7311  
  7312  
  7313  CHAPTER XXXI
  7314  
  7315  NOW to return to Tom and Becky's share in the picnic. They tripped
  7316  along the murky aisles with the rest of the company, visiting the
  7317  familiar wonders of the cave--wonders dubbed with rather
  7318  over-descriptive names, such as "The Drawing-Room," "The Cathedral,"
  7319  "Aladdin's Palace," and so on. Presently the hide-and-seek frolicking
  7320  began, and Tom and Becky engaged in it with zeal until the exertion
  7321  began to grow a trifle wearisome; then they wandered down a sinuous
  7322  avenue holding their candles aloft and reading the tangled web-work of
  7323  names, dates, post-office addresses, and mottoes with which the rocky
  7324  walls had been frescoed (in candle-smoke). Still drifting along and
  7325  talking, they scarcely noticed that they were now in a part of the cave
  7326  whose walls were not frescoed. They smoked their own names under an
  7327  overhanging shelf and moved on. Presently they came to a place where a
  7328  little stream of water, trickling over a ledge and carrying a limestone
  7329  sediment with it, had, in the slow-dragging ages, formed a laced and
  7330  ruffled Niagara in gleaming and imperishable stone. Tom squeezed his
  7331  small body behind it in order to illuminate it for Becky's
  7332  gratification. He found that it curtained a sort of steep natural
  7333  stairway which was enclosed between narrow walls, and at once the
  7334  ambition to be a discoverer seized him. Becky responded to his call,
  7335  and they made a smoke-mark for future guidance, and started upon their
  7336  quest. They wound this way and that, far down into the secret depths of
  7337  the cave, made another mark, and branched off in search of novelties to
  7338  tell the upper world about. In one place they found a spacious cavern,
  7339  from whose ceiling depended a multitude of shining stalactites of the
  7340  length and circumference of a man's leg; they walked all about it,
  7341  wondering and admiring, and presently left it by one of the numerous
  7342  passages that opened into it. This shortly brought them to a bewitching
  7343  spring, whose basin was incrusted with a frostwork of glittering
  7344  crystals; it was in the midst of a cavern whose walls were supported by
  7345  many fantastic pillars which had been formed by the joining of great
  7346  stalactites and stalagmites together, the result of the ceaseless
  7347  water-drip of centuries. Under the roof vast knots of bats had packed
  7348  themselves together, thousands in a bunch; the lights disturbed the
  7349  creatures and they came flocking down by hundreds, squeaking and
  7350  darting furiously at the candles. Tom knew their ways and the danger of
  7351  this sort of conduct. He seized Becky's hand and hurried her into the
  7352  first corridor that offered; and none too soon, for a bat struck
  7353  Becky's light out with its wing while she was passing out of the
  7354  cavern. The bats chased the children a good distance; but the fugitives
  7355  plunged into every new passage that offered, and at last got rid of the
  7356  perilous things. Tom found a subterranean lake, shortly, which
  7357  stretched its dim length away until its shape was lost in the shadows.
  7358  He wanted to explore its borders, but concluded that it would be best
  7359  to sit down and rest awhile, first. Now, for the first time, the deep
  7360  stillness of the place laid a clammy hand upon the spirits of the
  7361  children. Becky said:
  7362  
  7363  "Why, I didn't notice, but it seems ever so long since I heard any of
  7364  the others."
  7365  
  7366  "Come to think, Becky, we are away down below them--and I don't know
  7367  how far away north, or south, or east, or whichever it is. We couldn't
  7368  hear them here."
  7369  
  7370  Becky grew apprehensive.
  7371  
  7372  "I wonder how long we've been down here, Tom? We better start back."
  7373  
  7374  "Yes, I reckon we better. P'raps we better."
  7375  
  7376  "Can you find the way, Tom? It's all a mixed-up crookedness to me."
  7377  
  7378  "I reckon I could find it--but then the bats. If they put our candles
  7379  out it will be an awful fix. Let's try some other way, so as not to go
  7380  through there."
  7381  
  7382  "Well. But I hope we won't get lost. It would be so awful!" and the
  7383  girl shuddered at the thought of the dreadful possibilities.
  7384  
  7385  They started through a corridor, and traversed it in silence a long
  7386  way, glancing at each new opening, to see if there was anything
  7387  familiar about the look of it; but they were all strange. Every time
  7388  Tom made an examination, Becky would watch his face for an encouraging
  7389  sign, and he would say cheerily:
  7390  
  7391  "Oh, it's all right. This ain't the one, but we'll come to it right
  7392  away!"
  7393  
  7394  But he felt less and less hopeful with each failure, and presently
  7395  began to turn off into diverging avenues at sheer random, in desperate
  7396  hope of finding the one that was wanted. He still said it was "all
  7397  right," but there was such a leaden dread at his heart that the words
  7398  had lost their ring and sounded just as if he had said, "All is lost!"
  7399  Becky clung to his side in an anguish of fear, and tried hard to keep
  7400  back the tears, but they would come. At last she said:
  7401  
  7402  "Oh, Tom, never mind the bats, let's go back that way! We seem to get
  7403  worse and worse off all the time."
  7404  
  7405  "Listen!" said he.
  7406  
  7407  Profound silence; silence so deep that even their breathings were
  7408  conspicuous in the hush. Tom shouted. The call went echoing down the
  7409  empty aisles and died out in the distance in a faint sound that
  7410  resembled a ripple of mocking laughter.
  7411  
  7412  "Oh, don't do it again, Tom, it is too horrid," said Becky.
  7413  
  7414  "It is horrid, but I better, Becky; they might hear us, you know," and
  7415  he shouted again.
  7416  
  7417  The "might" was even a chillier horror than the ghostly laughter, it
  7418  so confessed a perishing hope. The children stood still and listened;
  7419  but there was no result. Tom turned upon the back track at once, and
  7420  hurried his steps. It was but a little while before a certain
  7421  indecision in his manner revealed another fearful fact to Becky--he
  7422  could not find his way back!
  7423  
  7424  "Oh, Tom, you didn't make any marks!"
  7425  
  7426  "Becky, I was such a fool! Such a fool! I never thought we might want
  7427  to come back! No--I can't find the way. It's all mixed up."
  7428  
  7429  "Tom, Tom, we're lost! we're lost! We never can get out of this awful
  7430  place! Oh, why DID we ever leave the others!"
  7431  
  7432  She sank to the ground and burst into such a frenzy of crying that Tom
  7433  was appalled with the idea that she might die, or lose her reason. He
  7434  sat down by her and put his arms around her; she buried her face in his
  7435  bosom, she clung to him, she poured out her terrors, her unavailing
  7436  regrets, and the far echoes turned them all to jeering laughter. Tom
  7437  begged her to pluck up hope again, and she said she could not. He fell
  7438  to blaming and abusing himself for getting her into this miserable
  7439  situation; this had a better effect. She said she would try to hope
  7440  again, she would get up and follow wherever he might lead if only he
  7441  would not talk like that any more. For he was no more to blame than
  7442  she, she said.
  7443  
  7444  So they moved on again--aimlessly--simply at random--all they could do
  7445  was to move, keep moving. For a little while, hope made a show of
  7446  reviving--not with any reason to back it, but only because it is its
  7447  nature to revive when the spring has not been taken out of it by age
  7448  and familiarity with failure.
  7449  
  7450  By-and-by Tom took Becky's candle and blew it out. This economy meant
  7451  so much! Words were not needed. Becky understood, and her hope died
  7452  again. She knew that Tom had a whole candle and three or four pieces in
  7453  his pockets--yet he must economize.
  7454  
  7455  By-and-by, fatigue began to assert its claims; the children tried to
  7456  pay attention, for it was dreadful to think of sitting down when time
  7457  was grown to be so precious, moving, in some direction, in any
  7458  direction, was at least progress and might bear fruit; but to sit down
  7459  was to invite death and shorten its pursuit.
  7460  
  7461  At last Becky's frail limbs refused to carry her farther. She sat
  7462  down. Tom rested with her, and they talked of home, and the friends
  7463  there, and the comfortable beds and, above all, the light! Becky cried,
  7464  and Tom tried to think of some way of comforting her, but all his
  7465  encouragements were grown threadbare with use, and sounded like
  7466  sarcasms. Fatigue bore so heavily upon Becky that she drowsed off to
  7467  sleep. Tom was grateful. He sat looking into her drawn face and saw it
  7468  grow smooth and natural under the influence of pleasant dreams; and
  7469  by-and-by a smile dawned and rested there. The peaceful face reflected
  7470  somewhat of peace and healing into his own spirit, and his thoughts
  7471  wandered away to bygone times and dreamy memories. While he was deep in
  7472  his musings, Becky woke up with a breezy little laugh--but it was
  7473  stricken dead upon her lips, and a groan followed it.
  7474  
  7475  "Oh, how COULD I sleep! I wish I never, never had waked! No! No, I
  7476  don't, Tom! Don't look so! I won't say it again."
  7477  
  7478  "I'm glad you've slept, Becky; you'll feel rested, now, and we'll find
  7479  the way out."
  7480  
  7481  "We can try, Tom; but I've seen such a beautiful country in my dream.
  7482  I reckon we are going there."
  7483  
  7484  "Maybe not, maybe not. Cheer up, Becky, and let's go on trying."
  7485  
  7486  They rose up and wandered along, hand in hand and hopeless. They tried
  7487  to estimate how long they had been in the cave, but all they knew was
  7488  that it seemed days and weeks, and yet it was plain that this could not
  7489  be, for their candles were not gone yet. A long time after this--they
  7490  could not tell how long--Tom said they must go softly and listen for
  7491  dripping water--they must find a spring. They found one presently, and
  7492  Tom said it was time to rest again. Both were cruelly tired, yet Becky
  7493  said she thought she could go a little farther. She was surprised to
  7494  hear Tom dissent. She could not understand it. They sat down, and Tom
  7495  fastened his candle to the wall in front of them with some clay.
  7496  Thought was soon busy; nothing was said for some time. Then Becky broke
  7497  the silence:
  7498  
  7499  "Tom, I am so hungry!"
  7500  
  7501  Tom took something out of his pocket.
  7502  
  7503  "Do you remember this?" said he.
  7504  
  7505  Becky almost smiled.
  7506  
  7507  "It's our wedding-cake, Tom."
  7508  
  7509  "Yes--I wish it was as big as a barrel, for it's all we've got."
  7510  
  7511  "I saved it from the picnic for us to dream on, Tom, the way grown-up
  7512  people do with wedding-cake--but it'll be our--"
  7513  
  7514  She dropped the sentence where it was. Tom divided the cake and Becky
  7515  ate with good appetite, while Tom nibbled at his moiety. There was
  7516  abundance of cold water to finish the feast with. By-and-by Becky
  7517  suggested that they move on again. Tom was silent a moment. Then he
  7518  said:
  7519  
  7520  "Becky, can you bear it if I tell you something?"
  7521  
  7522  Becky's face paled, but she thought she could.
  7523  
  7524  "Well, then, Becky, we must stay here, where there's water to drink.
  7525  That little piece is our last candle!"
  7526  
  7527  Becky gave loose to tears and wailings. Tom did what he could to
  7528  comfort her, but with little effect. At length Becky said:
  7529  
  7530  "Tom!"
  7531  
  7532  "Well, Becky?"
  7533  
  7534  "They'll miss us and hunt for us!"
  7535  
  7536  "Yes, they will! Certainly they will!"
  7537  
  7538  "Maybe they're hunting for us now, Tom."
  7539  
  7540  "Why, I reckon maybe they are. I hope they are."
  7541  
  7542  "When would they miss us, Tom?"
  7543  
  7544  "When they get back to the boat, I reckon."
  7545  
  7546  "Tom, it might be dark then--would they notice we hadn't come?"
  7547  
  7548  "I don't know. But anyway, your mother would miss you as soon as they
  7549  got home."
  7550  
  7551  A frightened look in Becky's face brought Tom to his senses and he saw
  7552  that he had made a blunder. Becky was not to have gone home that night!
  7553  The children became silent and thoughtful. In a moment a new burst of
  7554  grief from Becky showed Tom that the thing in his mind had struck hers
  7555  also--that the Sabbath morning might be half spent before Mrs. Thatcher
  7556  discovered that Becky was not at Mrs. Harper's.
  7557  
  7558  The children fastened their eyes upon their bit of candle and watched
  7559  it melt slowly and pitilessly away; saw the half inch of wick stand
  7560  alone at last; saw the feeble flame rise and fall, climb the thin
  7561  column of smoke, linger at its top a moment, and then--the horror of
  7562  utter darkness reigned!
  7563  
  7564  How long afterward it was that Becky came to a slow consciousness that
  7565  she was crying in Tom's arms, neither could tell. All that they knew
  7566  was, that after what seemed a mighty stretch of time, both awoke out of
  7567  a dead stupor of sleep and resumed their miseries once more. Tom said
  7568  it might be Sunday, now--maybe Monday. He tried to get Becky to talk,
  7569  but her sorrows were too oppressive, all her hopes were gone. Tom said
  7570  that they must have been missed long ago, and no doubt the search was
  7571  going on. He would shout and maybe some one would come. He tried it;
  7572  but in the darkness the distant echoes sounded so hideously that he
  7573  tried it no more.
  7574  
  7575  The hours wasted away, and hunger came to torment the captives again.
  7576  A portion of Tom's half of the cake was left; they divided and ate it.
  7577  But they seemed hungrier than before. The poor morsel of food only
  7578  whetted desire.
  7579  
  7580  By-and-by Tom said:
  7581  
  7582  "SH! Did you hear that?"
  7583  
  7584  Both held their breath and listened. There was a sound like the
  7585  faintest, far-off shout. Instantly Tom answered it, and leading Becky
  7586  by the hand, started groping down the corridor in its direction.
  7587  Presently he listened again; again the sound was heard, and apparently
  7588  a little nearer.
  7589  
  7590  "It's them!" said Tom; "they're coming! Come along, Becky--we're all
  7591  right now!"
  7592  
  7593  The joy of the prisoners was almost overwhelming. Their speed was
  7594  slow, however, because pitfalls were somewhat common, and had to be
  7595  guarded against. They shortly came to one and had to stop. It might be
  7596  three feet deep, it might be a hundred--there was no passing it at any
  7597  rate. Tom got down on his breast and reached as far down as he could.
  7598  No bottom. They must stay there and wait until the searchers came. They
  7599  listened; evidently the distant shoutings were growing more distant! a
  7600  moment or two more and they had gone altogether. The heart-sinking
  7601  misery of it! Tom whooped until he was hoarse, but it was of no use. He
  7602  talked hopefully to Becky; but an age of anxious waiting passed and no
  7603  sounds came again.
  7604  
  7605  The children groped their way back to the spring. The weary time
  7606  dragged on; they slept again, and awoke famished and woe-stricken. Tom
  7607  believed it must be Tuesday by this time.
  7608  
  7609  Now an idea struck him. There were some side passages near at hand. It
  7610  would be better to explore some of these than bear the weight of the
  7611  heavy time in idleness. He took a kite-line from his pocket, tied it to
  7612  a projection, and he and Becky started, Tom in the lead, unwinding the
  7613  line as he groped along. At the end of twenty steps the corridor ended
  7614  in a "jumping-off place." Tom got down on his knees and felt below, and
  7615  then as far around the corner as he could reach with his hands
  7616  conveniently; he made an effort to stretch yet a little farther to the
  7617  right, and at that moment, not twenty yards away, a human hand, holding
  7618  a candle, appeared from behind a rock! Tom lifted up a glorious shout,
  7619  and instantly that hand was followed by the body it belonged to--Injun
  7620  Joe's! Tom was paralyzed; he could not move. He was vastly gratified
  7621  the next moment, to see the "Spaniard" take to his heels and get
  7622  himself out of sight. Tom wondered that Joe had not recognized his
  7623  voice and come over and killed him for testifying in court. But the
  7624  echoes must have disguised the voice. Without doubt, that was it, he
  7625  reasoned. Tom's fright weakened every muscle in his body. He said to
  7626  himself that if he had strength enough to get back to the spring he
  7627  would stay there, and nothing should tempt him to run the risk of
  7628  meeting Injun Joe again. He was careful to keep from Becky what it was
  7629  he had seen. He told her he had only shouted "for luck."
  7630  
  7631  But hunger and wretchedness rise superior to fears in the long run.
  7632  Another tedious wait at the spring and another long sleep brought
  7633  changes. The children awoke tortured with a raging hunger. Tom believed
  7634  that it must be Wednesday or Thursday or even Friday or Saturday, now,
  7635  and that the search had been given over. He proposed to explore another
  7636  passage. He felt willing to risk Injun Joe and all other terrors. But
  7637  Becky was very weak. She had sunk into a dreary apathy and would not be
  7638  roused. She said she would wait, now, where she was, and die--it would
  7639  not be long. She told Tom to go with the kite-line and explore if he
  7640  chose; but she implored him to come back every little while and speak
  7641  to her; and she made him promise that when the awful time came, he
  7642  would stay by her and hold her hand until all was over.
  7643  
  7644  Tom kissed her, with a choking sensation in his throat, and made a
  7645  show of being confident of finding the searchers or an escape from the
  7646  cave; then he took the kite-line in his hand and went groping down one
  7647  of the passages on his hands and knees, distressed with hunger and sick
  7648  with bodings of coming doom.
  7649  
  7650  
  7651  
  7652  CHAPTER XXXII
  7653  
  7654  TUESDAY afternoon came, and waned to the twilight. The village of St.
  7655  Petersburg still mourned. The lost children had not been found. Public
  7656  prayers had been offered up for them, and many and many a private
  7657  prayer that had the petitioner's whole heart in it; but still no good
  7658  news came from the cave. The majority of the searchers had given up the
  7659  quest and gone back to their daily avocations, saying that it was plain
  7660  the children could never be found. Mrs. Thatcher was very ill, and a
  7661  great part of the time delirious. People said it was heartbreaking to
  7662  hear her call her child, and raise her head and listen a whole minute
  7663  at a time, then lay it wearily down again with a moan. Aunt Polly had
  7664  drooped into a settled melancholy, and her gray hair had grown almost
  7665  white. The village went to its rest on Tuesday night, sad and forlorn.
  7666  
  7667  Away in the middle of the night a wild peal burst from the village
  7668  bells, and in a moment the streets were swarming with frantic half-clad
  7669  people, who shouted, "Turn out! turn out! they're found! they're
  7670  found!" Tin pans and horns were added to the din, the population massed
  7671  itself and moved toward the river, met the children coming in an open
  7672  carriage drawn by shouting citizens, thronged around it, joined its
  7673  homeward march, and swept magnificently up the main street roaring
  7674  huzzah after huzzah!
  7675  
  7676  The village was illuminated; nobody went to bed again; it was the
  7677  greatest night the little town had ever seen. During the first half-hour
  7678  a procession of villagers filed through Judge Thatcher's house, seized
  7679  the saved ones and kissed them, squeezed Mrs. Thatcher's hand, tried to
  7680  speak but couldn't--and drifted out raining tears all over the place.
  7681  
  7682  Aunt Polly's happiness was complete, and Mrs. Thatcher's nearly so. It
  7683  would be complete, however, as soon as the messenger dispatched with
  7684  the great news to the cave should get the word to her husband. Tom lay
  7685  upon a sofa with an eager auditory about him and told the history of
  7686  the wonderful adventure, putting in many striking additions to adorn it
  7687  withal; and closed with a description of how he left Becky and went on
  7688  an exploring expedition; how he followed two avenues as far as his
  7689  kite-line would reach; how he followed a third to the fullest stretch of
  7690  the kite-line, and was about to turn back when he glimpsed a far-off
  7691  speck that looked like daylight; dropped the line and groped toward it,
  7692  pushed his head and shoulders through a small hole, and saw the broad
  7693  Mississippi rolling by! And if it had only happened to be night he would
  7694  not have seen that speck of daylight and would not have explored that
  7695  passage any more! He told how he went back for Becky and broke the good
  7696  news and she told him not to fret her with such stuff, for she was
  7697  tired, and knew she was going to die, and wanted to. He described how he
  7698  labored with her and convinced her; and how she almost died for joy when
  7699  she had groped to where she actually saw the blue speck of daylight; how
  7700  he pushed his way out at the hole and then helped her out; how they sat
  7701  there and cried for gladness; how some men came along in a skiff and Tom
  7702  hailed them and told them their situation and their famished condition;
  7703  how the men didn't believe the wild tale at first, "because," said they,
  7704  "you are five miles down the river below the valley the cave is in"
  7705  --then took them aboard, rowed to a house, gave them supper, made them
  7706  rest till two or three hours after dark and then brought them home.
  7707  
  7708  Before day-dawn, Judge Thatcher and the handful of searchers with him
  7709  were tracked out, in the cave, by the twine clews they had strung
  7710  behind them, and informed of the great news.
  7711  
  7712  Three days and nights of toil and hunger in the cave were not to be
  7713  shaken off at once, as Tom and Becky soon discovered. They were
  7714  bedridden all of Wednesday and Thursday, and seemed to grow more and
  7715  more tired and worn, all the time. Tom got about, a little, on
  7716  Thursday, was down-town Friday, and nearly as whole as ever Saturday;
  7717  but Becky did not leave her room until Sunday, and then she looked as
  7718  if she had passed through a wasting illness.
  7719  
  7720  Tom learned of Huck's sickness and went to see him on Friday, but
  7721  could not be admitted to the bedroom; neither could he on Saturday or
  7722  Sunday. He was admitted daily after that, but was warned to keep still
  7723  about his adventure and introduce no exciting topic. The Widow Douglas
  7724  stayed by to see that he obeyed. At home Tom learned of the Cardiff
  7725  Hill event; also that the "ragged man's" body had eventually been found
  7726  in the river near the ferry-landing; he had been drowned while trying
  7727  to escape, perhaps.
  7728  
  7729  About a fortnight after Tom's rescue from the cave, he started off to
  7730  visit Huck, who had grown plenty strong enough, now, to hear exciting
  7731  talk, and Tom had some that would interest him, he thought. Judge
  7732  Thatcher's house was on Tom's way, and he stopped to see Becky. The
  7733  Judge and some friends set Tom to talking, and some one asked him
  7734  ironically if he wouldn't like to go to the cave again. Tom said he
  7735  thought he wouldn't mind it. The Judge said:
  7736  
  7737  "Well, there are others just like you, Tom, I've not the least doubt.
  7738  But we have taken care of that. Nobody will get lost in that cave any
  7739  more."
  7740  
  7741  "Why?"
  7742  
  7743  "Because I had its big door sheathed with boiler iron two weeks ago,
  7744  and triple-locked--and I've got the keys."
  7745  
  7746  Tom turned as white as a sheet.
  7747  
  7748  "What's the matter, boy! Here, run, somebody! Fetch a glass of water!"
  7749  
  7750  The water was brought and thrown into Tom's face.
  7751  
  7752  "Ah, now you're all right. What was the matter with you, Tom?"
  7753  
  7754  "Oh, Judge, Injun Joe's in the cave!"
  7755  
  7756  
  7757  
  7758  CHAPTER XXXIII
  7759  
  7760  WITHIN a few minutes the news had spread, and a dozen skiff-loads of
  7761  men were on their way to McDougal's cave, and the ferryboat, well
  7762  filled with passengers, soon followed. Tom Sawyer was in the skiff that
  7763  bore Judge Thatcher.
  7764  
  7765  When the cave door was unlocked, a sorrowful sight presented itself in
  7766  the dim twilight of the place. Injun Joe lay stretched upon the ground,
  7767  dead, with his face close to the crack of the door, as if his longing
  7768  eyes had been fixed, to the latest moment, upon the light and the cheer
  7769  of the free world outside. Tom was touched, for he knew by his own
  7770  experience how this wretch had suffered. His pity was moved, but
  7771  nevertheless he felt an abounding sense of relief and security, now,
  7772  which revealed to him in a degree which he had not fully appreciated
  7773  before how vast a weight of dread had been lying upon him since the day
  7774  he lifted his voice against this bloody-minded outcast.
  7775  
  7776  Injun Joe's bowie-knife lay close by, its blade broken in two. The
  7777  great foundation-beam of the door had been chipped and hacked through,
  7778  with tedious labor; useless labor, too, it was, for the native rock
  7779  formed a sill outside it, and upon that stubborn material the knife had
  7780  wrought no effect; the only damage done was to the knife itself. But if
  7781  there had been no stony obstruction there the labor would have been
  7782  useless still, for if the beam had been wholly cut away Injun Joe could
  7783  not have squeezed his body under the door, and he knew it. So he had
  7784  only hacked that place in order to be doing something--in order to pass
  7785  the weary time--in order to employ his tortured faculties. Ordinarily
  7786  one could find half a dozen bits of candle stuck around in the crevices
  7787  of this vestibule, left there by tourists; but there were none now. The
  7788  prisoner had searched them out and eaten them. He had also contrived to
  7789  catch a few bats, and these, also, he had eaten, leaving only their
  7790  claws. The poor unfortunate had starved to death. In one place, near at
  7791  hand, a stalagmite had been slowly growing up from the ground for ages,
  7792  builded by the water-drip from a stalactite overhead. The captive had
  7793  broken off the stalagmite, and upon the stump had placed a stone,
  7794  wherein he had scooped a shallow hollow to catch the precious drop
  7795  that fell once in every three minutes with the dreary regularity of a
  7796  clock-tick--a dessertspoonful once in four and twenty hours. That drop
  7797  was falling when the Pyramids were new; when Troy fell; when the
  7798  foundations of Rome were laid; when Christ was crucified; when the
  7799  Conqueror created the British empire; when Columbus sailed; when the
  7800  massacre at Lexington was "news." It is falling now; it will still be
  7801  falling when all these things shall have sunk down the afternoon of
  7802  history, and the twilight of tradition, and been swallowed up in the
  7803  thick night of oblivion. Has everything a purpose and a mission? Did
  7804  this drop fall patiently during five thousand years to be ready for
  7805  this flitting human insect's need? and has it another important object
  7806  to accomplish ten thousand years to come? No matter. It is many and
  7807  many a year since the hapless half-breed scooped out the stone to catch
  7808  the priceless drops, but to this day the tourist stares longest at that
  7809  pathetic stone and that slow-dropping water when he comes to see the
  7810  wonders of McDougal's cave. Injun Joe's cup stands first in the list of
  7811  the cavern's marvels; even "Aladdin's Palace" cannot rival it.
  7812  
  7813  Injun Joe was buried near the mouth of the cave; and people flocked
  7814  there in boats and wagons from the towns and from all the farms and
  7815  hamlets for seven miles around; they brought their children, and all
  7816  sorts of provisions, and confessed that they had had almost as
  7817  satisfactory a time at the funeral as they could have had at the
  7818  hanging.
  7819  
  7820  This funeral stopped the further growth of one thing--the petition to
  7821  the governor for Injun Joe's pardon. The petition had been largely
  7822  signed; many tearful and eloquent meetings had been held, and a
  7823  committee of sappy women been appointed to go in deep mourning and wail
  7824  around the governor, and implore him to be a merciful ass and trample
  7825  his duty under foot. Injun Joe was believed to have killed five
  7826  citizens of the village, but what of that? If he had been Satan himself
  7827  there would have been plenty of weaklings ready to scribble their names
  7828  to a pardon-petition, and drip a tear on it from their permanently
  7829  impaired and leaky water-works.
  7830  
  7831  The morning after the funeral Tom took Huck to a private place to have
  7832  an important talk. Huck had learned all about Tom's adventure from the
  7833  Welshman and the Widow Douglas, by this time, but Tom said he reckoned
  7834  there was one thing they had not told him; that thing was what he
  7835  wanted to talk about now. Huck's face saddened. He said:
  7836  
  7837  "I know what it is. You got into No. 2 and never found anything but
  7838  whiskey. Nobody told me it was you; but I just knowed it must 'a' ben
  7839  you, soon as I heard 'bout that whiskey business; and I knowed you
  7840  hadn't got the money becuz you'd 'a' got at me some way or other and
  7841  told me even if you was mum to everybody else. Tom, something's always
  7842  told me we'd never get holt of that swag."
  7843  
  7844  "Why, Huck, I never told on that tavern-keeper. YOU know his tavern
  7845  was all right the Saturday I went to the picnic. Don't you remember you
  7846  was to watch there that night?"
  7847  
  7848  "Oh yes! Why, it seems 'bout a year ago. It was that very night that I
  7849  follered Injun Joe to the widder's."
  7850  
  7851  "YOU followed him?"
  7852  
  7853  "Yes--but you keep mum. I reckon Injun Joe's left friends behind him,
  7854  and I don't want 'em souring on me and doing me mean tricks. If it
  7855  hadn't ben for me he'd be down in Texas now, all right."
  7856  
  7857  Then Huck told his entire adventure in confidence to Tom, who had only
  7858  heard of the Welshman's part of it before.
  7859  
  7860  "Well," said Huck, presently, coming back to the main question,
  7861  "whoever nipped the whiskey in No. 2, nipped the money, too, I reckon
  7862  --anyways it's a goner for us, Tom."
  7863  
  7864  "Huck, that money wasn't ever in No. 2!"
  7865  
  7866  "What!" Huck searched his comrade's face keenly. "Tom, have you got on
  7867  the track of that money again?"
  7868  
  7869  "Huck, it's in the cave!"
  7870  
  7871  Huck's eyes blazed.
  7872  
  7873  "Say it again, Tom."
  7874  
  7875  "The money's in the cave!"
  7876  
  7877  "Tom--honest injun, now--is it fun, or earnest?"
  7878  
  7879  "Earnest, Huck--just as earnest as ever I was in my life. Will you go
  7880  in there with me and help get it out?"
  7881  
  7882  "I bet I will! I will if it's where we can blaze our way to it and not
  7883  get lost."
  7884  
  7885  "Huck, we can do that without the least little bit of trouble in the
  7886  world."
  7887  
  7888  "Good as wheat! What makes you think the money's--"
  7889  
  7890  "Huck, you just wait till we get in there. If we don't find it I'll
  7891  agree to give you my drum and every thing I've got in the world. I
  7892  will, by jings."
  7893  
  7894  "All right--it's a whiz. When do you say?"
  7895  
  7896  "Right now, if you say it. Are you strong enough?"
  7897  
  7898  "Is it far in the cave? I ben on my pins a little, three or four days,
  7899  now, but I can't walk more'n a mile, Tom--least I don't think I could."
  7900  
  7901  "It's about five mile into there the way anybody but me would go,
  7902  Huck, but there's a mighty short cut that they don't anybody but me
  7903  know about. Huck, I'll take you right to it in a skiff. I'll float the
  7904  skiff down there, and I'll pull it back again all by myself. You
  7905  needn't ever turn your hand over."
  7906  
  7907  "Less start right off, Tom."
  7908  
  7909  "All right. We want some bread and meat, and our pipes, and a little
  7910  bag or two, and two or three kite-strings, and some of these
  7911  new-fangled things they call lucifer matches. I tell you, many's
  7912  the time I wished I had some when I was in there before."
  7913  
  7914  A trifle after noon the boys borrowed a small skiff from a citizen who
  7915  was absent, and got under way at once. When they were several miles
  7916  below "Cave Hollow," Tom said:
  7917  
  7918  "Now you see this bluff here looks all alike all the way down from the
  7919  cave hollow--no houses, no wood-yards, bushes all alike. But do you see
  7920  that white place up yonder where there's been a landslide? Well, that's
  7921  one of my marks. We'll get ashore, now."
  7922  
  7923  They landed.
  7924  
  7925  "Now, Huck, where we're a-standing you could touch that hole I got out
  7926  of with a fishing-pole. See if you can find it."
  7927  
  7928  Huck searched all the place about, and found nothing. Tom proudly
  7929  marched into a thick clump of sumach bushes and said:
  7930  
  7931  "Here you are! Look at it, Huck; it's the snuggest hole in this
  7932  country. You just keep mum about it. All along I've been wanting to be
  7933  a robber, but I knew I'd got to have a thing like this, and where to
  7934  run across it was the bother. We've got it now, and we'll keep it
  7935  quiet, only we'll let Joe Harper and Ben Rogers in--because of course
  7936  there's got to be a Gang, or else there wouldn't be any style about it.
  7937  Tom Sawyer's Gang--it sounds splendid, don't it, Huck?"
  7938  
  7939  "Well, it just does, Tom. And who'll we rob?"
  7940  
  7941  "Oh, most anybody. Waylay people--that's mostly the way."
  7942  
  7943  "And kill them?"
  7944  
  7945  "No, not always. Hive them in the cave till they raise a ransom."
  7946  
  7947  "What's a ransom?"
  7948  
  7949  "Money. You make them raise all they can, off'n their friends; and
  7950  after you've kept them a year, if it ain't raised then you kill them.
  7951  That's the general way. Only you don't kill the women. You shut up the
  7952  women, but you don't kill them. They're always beautiful and rich, and
  7953  awfully scared. You take their watches and things, but you always take
  7954  your hat off and talk polite. They ain't anybody as polite as robbers
  7955  --you'll see that in any book. Well, the women get to loving you, and
  7956  after they've been in the cave a week or two weeks they stop crying and
  7957  after that you couldn't get them to leave. If you drove them out they'd
  7958  turn right around and come back. It's so in all the books."
  7959  
  7960  "Why, it's real bully, Tom. I believe it's better'n to be a pirate."
  7961  
  7962  "Yes, it's better in some ways, because it's close to home and
  7963  circuses and all that."
  7964  
  7965  By this time everything was ready and the boys entered the hole, Tom
  7966  in the lead. They toiled their way to the farther end of the tunnel,
  7967  then made their spliced kite-strings fast and moved on. A few steps
  7968  brought them to the spring, and Tom felt a shudder quiver all through
  7969  him. He showed Huck the fragment of candle-wick perched on a lump of
  7970  clay against the wall, and described how he and Becky had watched the
  7971  flame struggle and expire.
  7972  
  7973  The boys began to quiet down to whispers, now, for the stillness and
  7974  gloom of the place oppressed their spirits. They went on, and presently
  7975  entered and followed Tom's other corridor until they reached the
  7976  "jumping-off place." The candles revealed the fact that it was not
  7977  really a precipice, but only a steep clay hill twenty or thirty feet
  7978  high. Tom whispered:
  7979  
  7980  "Now I'll show you something, Huck."
  7981  
  7982  He held his candle aloft and said:
  7983  
  7984  "Look as far around the corner as you can. Do you see that? There--on
  7985  the big rock over yonder--done with candle-smoke."
  7986  
  7987  "Tom, it's a CROSS!"
  7988  
  7989  "NOW where's your Number Two? 'UNDER THE CROSS,' hey? Right yonder's
  7990  where I saw Injun Joe poke up his candle, Huck!"
  7991  
  7992  Huck stared at the mystic sign awhile, and then said with a shaky voice:
  7993  
  7994  "Tom, less git out of here!"
  7995  
  7996  "What! and leave the treasure?"
  7997  
  7998  "Yes--leave it. Injun Joe's ghost is round about there, certain."
  7999  
  8000  "No it ain't, Huck, no it ain't. It would ha'nt the place where he
  8001  died--away out at the mouth of the cave--five mile from here."
  8002  
  8003  "No, Tom, it wouldn't. It would hang round the money. I know the ways
  8004  of ghosts, and so do you."
  8005  
  8006  Tom began to fear that Huck was right. Misgivings gathered in his
  8007  mind. But presently an idea occurred to him--
  8008  
  8009  "Lookyhere, Huck, what fools we're making of ourselves! Injun Joe's
  8010  ghost ain't a going to come around where there's a cross!"
  8011  
  8012  The point was well taken. It had its effect.
  8013  
  8014  "Tom, I didn't think of that. But that's so. It's luck for us, that
  8015  cross is. I reckon we'll climb down there and have a hunt for that box."
  8016  
  8017  Tom went first, cutting rude steps in the clay hill as he descended.
  8018  Huck followed. Four avenues opened out of the small cavern which the
  8019  great rock stood in. The boys examined three of them with no result.
  8020  They found a small recess in the one nearest the base of the rock, with
  8021  a pallet of blankets spread down in it; also an old suspender, some
  8022  bacon rind, and the well-gnawed bones of two or three fowls. But there
  8023  was no money-box. The lads searched and researched this place, but in
  8024  vain. Tom said:
  8025  
  8026  "He said UNDER the cross. Well, this comes nearest to being under the
  8027  cross. It can't be under the rock itself, because that sets solid on
  8028  the ground."
  8029  
  8030  They searched everywhere once more, and then sat down discouraged.
  8031  Huck could suggest nothing. By-and-by Tom said:
  8032  
  8033  "Lookyhere, Huck, there's footprints and some candle-grease on the
  8034  clay about one side of this rock, but not on the other sides. Now,
  8035  what's that for? I bet you the money IS under the rock. I'm going to
  8036  dig in the clay."
  8037  
  8038  "That ain't no bad notion, Tom!" said Huck with animation.
  8039  
  8040  Tom's "real Barlow" was out at once, and he had not dug four inches
  8041  before he struck wood.
  8042  
  8043  "Hey, Huck!--you hear that?"
  8044  
  8045  Huck began to dig and scratch now. Some boards were soon uncovered and
  8046  removed. They had concealed a natural chasm which led under the rock.
  8047  Tom got into this and held his candle as far under the rock as he
  8048  could, but said he could not see to the end of the rift. He proposed to
  8049  explore. He stooped and passed under; the narrow way descended
  8050  gradually. He followed its winding course, first to the right, then to
  8051  the left, Huck at his heels. Tom turned a short curve, by-and-by, and
  8052  exclaimed:
  8053  
  8054  "My goodness, Huck, lookyhere!"
  8055  
  8056  It was the treasure-box, sure enough, occupying a snug little cavern,
  8057  along with an empty powder-keg, a couple of guns in leather cases, two
  8058  or three pairs of old moccasins, a leather belt, and some other rubbish
  8059  well soaked with the water-drip.
  8060  
  8061  "Got it at last!" said Huck, ploughing among the tarnished coins with
  8062  his hand. "My, but we're rich, Tom!"
  8063  
  8064  "Huck, I always reckoned we'd get it. It's just too good to believe,
  8065  but we HAVE got it, sure! Say--let's not fool around here. Let's snake
  8066  it out. Lemme see if I can lift the box."
  8067  
  8068  It weighed about fifty pounds. Tom could lift it, after an awkward
  8069  fashion, but could not carry it conveniently.
  8070  
  8071  "I thought so," he said; "THEY carried it like it was heavy, that day
  8072  at the ha'nted house. I noticed that. I reckon I was right to think of
  8073  fetching the little bags along."
  8074  
  8075  The money was soon in the bags and the boys took it up to the cross
  8076  rock.
  8077  
  8078  "Now less fetch the guns and things," said Huck.
  8079  
  8080  "No, Huck--leave them there. They're just the tricks to have when we
  8081  go to robbing. We'll keep them there all the time, and we'll hold our
  8082  orgies there, too. It's an awful snug place for orgies."
  8083  
  8084  "What orgies?"
  8085  
  8086  "I dono. But robbers always have orgies, and of course we've got to
  8087  have them, too. Come along, Huck, we've been in here a long time. It's
  8088  getting late, I reckon. I'm hungry, too. We'll eat and smoke when we
  8089  get to the skiff."
  8090  
  8091  They presently emerged into the clump of sumach bushes, looked warily
  8092  out, found the coast clear, and were soon lunching and smoking in the
  8093  skiff. As the sun dipped toward the horizon they pushed out and got
  8094  under way. Tom skimmed up the shore through the long twilight, chatting
  8095  cheerily with Huck, and landed shortly after dark.
  8096  
  8097  "Now, Huck," said Tom, "we'll hide the money in the loft of the
  8098  widow's woodshed, and I'll come up in the morning and we'll count it
  8099  and divide, and then we'll hunt up a place out in the woods for it
  8100  where it will be safe. Just you lay quiet here and watch the stuff till
  8101  I run and hook Benny Taylor's little wagon; I won't be gone a minute."
  8102  
  8103  He disappeared, and presently returned with the wagon, put the two
  8104  small sacks into it, threw some old rags on top of them, and started
  8105  off, dragging his cargo behind him. When the boys reached the
  8106  Welshman's house, they stopped to rest. Just as they were about to move
  8107  on, the Welshman stepped out and said:
  8108  
  8109  "Hallo, who's that?"
  8110  
  8111  "Huck and Tom Sawyer."
  8112  
  8113  "Good! Come along with me, boys, you are keeping everybody waiting.
  8114  Here--hurry up, trot ahead--I'll haul the wagon for you. Why, it's not
  8115  as light as it might be. Got bricks in it?--or old metal?"
  8116  
  8117  "Old metal," said Tom.
  8118  
  8119  "I judged so; the boys in this town will take more trouble and fool
  8120  away more time hunting up six bits' worth of old iron to sell to the
  8121  foundry than they would to make twice the money at regular work. But
  8122  that's human nature--hurry along, hurry along!"
  8123  
  8124  The boys wanted to know what the hurry was about.
  8125  
  8126  "Never mind; you'll see, when we get to the Widow Douglas'."
  8127  
  8128  Huck said with some apprehension--for he was long used to being
  8129  falsely accused:
  8130  
  8131  "Mr. Jones, we haven't been doing nothing."
  8132  
  8133  The Welshman laughed.
  8134  
  8135  "Well, I don't know, Huck, my boy. I don't know about that. Ain't you
  8136  and the widow good friends?"
  8137  
  8138  "Yes. Well, she's ben good friends to me, anyway."
  8139  
  8140  "All right, then. What do you want to be afraid for?"
  8141  
  8142  This question was not entirely answered in Huck's slow mind before he
  8143  found himself pushed, along with Tom, into Mrs. Douglas' drawing-room.
  8144  Mr. Jones left the wagon near the door and followed.
  8145  
  8146  The place was grandly lighted, and everybody that was of any
  8147  consequence in the village was there. The Thatchers were there, the
  8148  Harpers, the Rogerses, Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, the minister, the editor,
  8149  and a great many more, and all dressed in their best. The widow
  8150  received the boys as heartily as any one could well receive two such
  8151  looking beings. They were covered with clay and candle-grease. Aunt
  8152  Polly blushed crimson with humiliation, and frowned and shook her head
  8153  at Tom. Nobody suffered half as much as the two boys did, however. Mr.
  8154  Jones said:
  8155  
  8156  "Tom wasn't at home, yet, so I gave him up; but I stumbled on him and
  8157  Huck right at my door, and so I just brought them along in a hurry."
  8158  
  8159  "And you did just right," said the widow. "Come with me, boys."
  8160  
  8161  She took them to a bedchamber and said:
  8162  
  8163  "Now wash and dress yourselves. Here are two new suits of clothes
  8164  --shirts, socks, everything complete. They're Huck's--no, no thanks,
  8165  Huck--Mr. Jones bought one and I the other. But they'll fit both of you.
  8166  Get into them. We'll wait--come down when you are slicked up enough."
  8167  
  8168  Then she left.
  8169  
  8170  
  8171  
  8172  CHAPTER XXXIV
  8173  
  8174  HUCK said: "Tom, we can slope, if we can find a rope. The window ain't
  8175  high from the ground."
  8176  
  8177  "Shucks! what do you want to slope for?"
  8178  
  8179  "Well, I ain't used to that kind of a crowd. I can't stand it. I ain't
  8180  going down there, Tom."
  8181  
  8182  "Oh, bother! It ain't anything. I don't mind it a bit. I'll take care
  8183  of you."
  8184  
  8185  Sid appeared.
  8186  
  8187  "Tom," said he, "auntie has been waiting for you all the afternoon.
  8188  Mary got your Sunday clothes ready, and everybody's been fretting about
  8189  you. Say--ain't this grease and clay, on your clothes?"
  8190  
  8191  "Now, Mr. Siddy, you jist 'tend to your own business. What's all this
  8192  blow-out about, anyway?"
  8193  
  8194  "It's one of the widow's parties that she's always having. This time
  8195  it's for the Welshman and his sons, on account of that scrape they
  8196  helped her out of the other night. And say--I can tell you something,
  8197  if you want to know."
  8198  
  8199  "Well, what?"
  8200  
  8201  "Why, old Mr. Jones is going to try to spring something on the people
  8202  here to-night, but I overheard him tell auntie to-day about it, as a
  8203  secret, but I reckon it's not much of a secret now. Everybody knows
  8204  --the widow, too, for all she tries to let on she don't. Mr. Jones was
  8205  bound Huck should be here--couldn't get along with his grand secret
  8206  without Huck, you know!"
  8207  
  8208  "Secret about what, Sid?"
  8209  
  8210  "About Huck tracking the robbers to the widow's. I reckon Mr. Jones
  8211  was going to make a grand time over his surprise, but I bet you it will
  8212  drop pretty flat."
  8213  
  8214  Sid chuckled in a very contented and satisfied way.
  8215  
  8216  "Sid, was it you that told?"
  8217  
  8218  "Oh, never mind who it was. SOMEBODY told--that's enough."
  8219  
  8220  "Sid, there's only one person in this town mean enough to do that, and
  8221  that's you. If you had been in Huck's place you'd 'a' sneaked down the
  8222  hill and never told anybody on the robbers. You can't do any but mean
  8223  things, and you can't bear to see anybody praised for doing good ones.
  8224  There--no thanks, as the widow says"--and Tom cuffed Sid's ears and
  8225  helped him to the door with several kicks. "Now go and tell auntie if
  8226  you dare--and to-morrow you'll catch it!"
  8227  
  8228  Some minutes later the widow's guests were at the supper-table, and a
  8229  dozen children were propped up at little side-tables in the same room,
  8230  after the fashion of that country and that day. At the proper time Mr.
  8231  Jones made his little speech, in which he thanked the widow for the
  8232  honor she was doing himself and his sons, but said that there was
  8233  another person whose modesty--
  8234  
  8235  And so forth and so on. He sprung his secret about Huck's share in the
  8236  adventure in the finest dramatic manner he was master of, but the
  8237  surprise it occasioned was largely counterfeit and not as clamorous and
  8238  effusive as it might have been under happier circumstances. However,
  8239  the widow made a pretty fair show of astonishment, and heaped so many
  8240  compliments and so much gratitude upon Huck that he almost forgot the
  8241  nearly intolerable discomfort of his new clothes in the entirely
  8242  intolerable discomfort of being set up as a target for everybody's gaze
  8243  and everybody's laudations.
  8244  
  8245  The widow said she meant to give Huck a home under her roof and have
  8246  him educated; and that when she could spare the money she would start
  8247  him in business in a modest way. Tom's chance was come. He said:
  8248  
  8249  "Huck don't need it. Huck's rich."
  8250  
  8251  Nothing but a heavy strain upon the good manners of the company kept
  8252  back the due and proper complimentary laugh at this pleasant joke. But
  8253  the silence was a little awkward. Tom broke it:
  8254  
  8255  "Huck's got money. Maybe you don't believe it, but he's got lots of
  8256  it. Oh, you needn't smile--I reckon I can show you. You just wait a
  8257  minute."
  8258  
  8259  Tom ran out of doors. The company looked at each other with a
  8260  perplexed interest--and inquiringly at Huck, who was tongue-tied.
  8261  
  8262  "Sid, what ails Tom?" said Aunt Polly. "He--well, there ain't ever any
  8263  making of that boy out. I never--"
  8264  
  8265  Tom entered, struggling with the weight of his sacks, and Aunt Polly
  8266  did not finish her sentence. Tom poured the mass of yellow coin upon
  8267  the table and said:
  8268  
  8269  "There--what did I tell you? Half of it's Huck's and half of it's mine!"
  8270  
  8271  The spectacle took the general breath away. All gazed, nobody spoke
  8272  for a moment. Then there was a unanimous call for an explanation. Tom
  8273  said he could furnish it, and he did. The tale was long, but brimful of
  8274  interest. There was scarcely an interruption from any one to break the
  8275  charm of its flow. When he had finished, Mr. Jones said:
  8276  
  8277  "I thought I had fixed up a little surprise for this occasion, but it
  8278  don't amount to anything now. This one makes it sing mighty small, I'm
  8279  willing to allow."
  8280  
  8281  The money was counted. The sum amounted to a little over twelve
  8282  thousand dollars. It was more than any one present had ever seen at one
  8283  time before, though several persons were there who were worth
  8284  considerably more than that in property.
  8285  
  8286  
  8287  
  8288  CHAPTER XXXV
  8289  
  8290  THE reader may rest satisfied that Tom's and Huck's windfall made a
  8291  mighty stir in the poor little village of St. Petersburg. So vast a
  8292  sum, all in actual cash, seemed next to incredible. It was talked
  8293  about, gloated over, glorified, until the reason of many of the
  8294  citizens tottered under the strain of the unhealthy excitement. Every
  8295  "haunted" house in St. Petersburg and the neighboring villages was
  8296  dissected, plank by plank, and its foundations dug up and ransacked for
  8297  hidden treasure--and not by boys, but men--pretty grave, unromantic
  8298  men, too, some of them. Wherever Tom and Huck appeared they were
  8299  courted, admired, stared at. The boys were not able to remember that
  8300  their remarks had possessed weight before; but now their sayings were
  8301  treasured and repeated; everything they did seemed somehow to be
  8302  regarded as remarkable; they had evidently lost the power of doing and
  8303  saying commonplace things; moreover, their past history was raked up
  8304  and discovered to bear marks of conspicuous originality. The village
  8305  paper published biographical sketches of the boys.
  8306  
  8307  The Widow Douglas put Huck's money out at six per cent., and Judge
  8308  Thatcher did the same with Tom's at Aunt Polly's request. Each lad had
  8309  an income, now, that was simply prodigious--a dollar for every week-day
  8310  in the year and half of the Sundays. It was just what the minister got
  8311  --no, it was what he was promised--he generally couldn't collect it. A
  8312  dollar and a quarter a week would board, lodge, and school a boy in
  8313  those old simple days--and clothe him and wash him, too, for that
  8314  matter.
  8315  
  8316  Judge Thatcher had conceived a great opinion of Tom. He said that no
  8317  commonplace boy would ever have got his daughter out of the cave. When
  8318  Becky told her father, in strict confidence, how Tom had taken her
  8319  whipping at school, the Judge was visibly moved; and when she pleaded
  8320  grace for the mighty lie which Tom had told in order to shift that
  8321  whipping from her shoulders to his own, the Judge said with a fine
  8322  outburst that it was a noble, a generous, a magnanimous lie--a lie that
  8323  was worthy to hold up its head and march down through history breast to
  8324  breast with George Washington's lauded Truth about the hatchet! Becky
  8325  thought her father had never looked so tall and so superb as when he
  8326  walked the floor and stamped his foot and said that. She went straight
  8327  off and told Tom about it.
  8328  
  8329  Judge Thatcher hoped to see Tom a great lawyer or a great soldier some
  8330  day. He said he meant to look to it that Tom should be admitted to the
  8331  National Military Academy and afterward trained in the best law school
  8332  in the country, in order that he might be ready for either career or
  8333  both.
  8334  
  8335  Huck Finn's wealth and the fact that he was now under the Widow
  8336  Douglas' protection introduced him into society--no, dragged him into
  8337  it, hurled him into it--and his sufferings were almost more than he
  8338  could bear. The widow's servants kept him clean and neat, combed and
  8339  brushed, and they bedded him nightly in unsympathetic sheets that had
  8340  not one little spot or stain which he could press to his heart and know
  8341  for a friend. He had to eat with a knife and fork; he had to use
  8342  napkin, cup, and plate; he had to learn his book, he had to go to
  8343  church; he had to talk so properly that speech was become insipid in
  8344  his mouth; whithersoever he turned, the bars and shackles of
  8345  civilization shut him in and bound him hand and foot.
  8346  
  8347  He bravely bore his miseries three weeks, and then one day turned up
  8348  missing. For forty-eight hours the widow hunted for him everywhere in
  8349  great distress. The public were profoundly concerned; they searched
  8350  high and low, they dragged the river for his body. Early the third
  8351  morning Tom Sawyer wisely went poking among some old empty hogsheads
  8352  down behind the abandoned slaughter-house, and in one of them he found
  8353  the refugee. Huck had slept there; he had just breakfasted upon some
  8354  stolen odds and ends of food, and was lying off, now, in comfort, with
  8355  his pipe. He was unkempt, uncombed, and clad in the same old ruin of
  8356  rags that had made him picturesque in the days when he was free and
  8357  happy. Tom routed him out, told him the trouble he had been causing,
  8358  and urged him to go home. Huck's face lost its tranquil content, and
  8359  took a melancholy cast. He said:
  8360  
  8361  "Don't talk about it, Tom. I've tried it, and it don't work; it don't
  8362  work, Tom. It ain't for me; I ain't used to it. The widder's good to
  8363  me, and friendly; but I can't stand them ways. She makes me get up just
  8364  at the same time every morning; she makes me wash, they comb me all to
  8365  thunder; she won't let me sleep in the woodshed; I got to wear them
  8366  blamed clothes that just smothers me, Tom; they don't seem to any air
  8367  git through 'em, somehow; and they're so rotten nice that I can't set
  8368  down, nor lay down, nor roll around anywher's; I hain't slid on a
  8369  cellar-door for--well, it 'pears to be years; I got to go to church and
  8370  sweat and sweat--I hate them ornery sermons! I can't ketch a fly in
  8371  there, I can't chaw. I got to wear shoes all Sunday. The widder eats by
  8372  a bell; she goes to bed by a bell; she gits up by a bell--everything's
  8373  so awful reg'lar a body can't stand it."
  8374  
  8375  "Well, everybody does that way, Huck."
  8376  
  8377  "Tom, it don't make no difference. I ain't everybody, and I can't
  8378  STAND it. It's awful to be tied up so. And grub comes too easy--I don't
  8379  take no interest in vittles, that way. I got to ask to go a-fishing; I
  8380  got to ask to go in a-swimming--dern'd if I hain't got to ask to do
  8381  everything. Well, I'd got to talk so nice it wasn't no comfort--I'd got
  8382  to go up in the attic and rip out awhile, every day, to git a taste in
  8383  my mouth, or I'd a died, Tom. The widder wouldn't let me smoke; she
  8384  wouldn't let me yell, she wouldn't let me gape, nor stretch, nor
  8385  scratch, before folks--" [Then with a spasm of special irritation and
  8386  injury]--"And dad fetch it, she prayed all the time! I never see such a
  8387  woman! I HAD to shove, Tom--I just had to. And besides, that school's
  8388  going to open, and I'd a had to go to it--well, I wouldn't stand THAT,
  8389  Tom. Looky here, Tom, being rich ain't what it's cracked up to be. It's
  8390  just worry and worry, and sweat and sweat, and a-wishing you was dead
  8391  all the time. Now these clothes suits me, and this bar'l suits me, and
  8392  I ain't ever going to shake 'em any more. Tom, I wouldn't ever got into
  8393  all this trouble if it hadn't 'a' ben for that money; now you just take
  8394  my sheer of it along with your'n, and gimme a ten-center sometimes--not
  8395  many times, becuz I don't give a dern for a thing 'thout it's tollable
  8396  hard to git--and you go and beg off for me with the widder."
  8397  
  8398  "Oh, Huck, you know I can't do that. 'Tain't fair; and besides if
  8399  you'll try this thing just a while longer you'll come to like it."
  8400  
  8401  "Like it! Yes--the way I'd like a hot stove if I was to set on it long
  8402  enough. No, Tom, I won't be rich, and I won't live in them cussed
  8403  smothery houses. I like the woods, and the river, and hogsheads, and
  8404  I'll stick to 'em, too. Blame it all! just as we'd got guns, and a
  8405  cave, and all just fixed to rob, here this dern foolishness has got to
  8406  come up and spile it all!"
  8407  
  8408  Tom saw his opportunity--
  8409  
  8410  "Lookyhere, Huck, being rich ain't going to keep me back from turning
  8411  robber."
  8412  
  8413  "No! Oh, good-licks; are you in real dead-wood earnest, Tom?"
  8414  
  8415  "Just as dead earnest as I'm sitting here. But Huck, we can't let you
  8416  into the gang if you ain't respectable, you know."
  8417  
  8418  Huck's joy was quenched.
  8419  
  8420  "Can't let me in, Tom? Didn't you let me go for a pirate?"
  8421  
  8422  "Yes, but that's different. A robber is more high-toned than what a
  8423  pirate is--as a general thing. In most countries they're awful high up
  8424  in the nobility--dukes and such."
  8425  
  8426  "Now, Tom, hain't you always ben friendly to me? You wouldn't shet me
  8427  out, would you, Tom? You wouldn't do that, now, WOULD you, Tom?"
  8428  
  8429  "Huck, I wouldn't want to, and I DON'T want to--but what would people
  8430  say? Why, they'd say, 'Mph! Tom Sawyer's Gang! pretty low characters in
  8431  it!' They'd mean you, Huck. You wouldn't like that, and I wouldn't."
  8432  
  8433  Huck was silent for some time, engaged in a mental struggle. Finally
  8434  he said:
  8435  
  8436  "Well, I'll go back to the widder for a month and tackle it and see if
  8437  I can come to stand it, if you'll let me b'long to the gang, Tom."
  8438  
  8439  "All right, Huck, it's a whiz! Come along, old chap, and I'll ask the
  8440  widow to let up on you a little, Huck."
  8441  
  8442  "Will you, Tom--now will you? That's good. If she'll let up on some of
  8443  the roughest things, I'll smoke private and cuss private, and crowd
  8444  through or bust. When you going to start the gang and turn robbers?"
  8445  
  8446  "Oh, right off. We'll get the boys together and have the initiation
  8447  to-night, maybe."
  8448  
  8449  "Have the which?"
  8450  
  8451  "Have the initiation."
  8452  
  8453  "What's that?"
  8454  
  8455  "It's to swear to stand by one another, and never tell the gang's
  8456  secrets, even if you're chopped all to flinders, and kill anybody and
  8457  all his family that hurts one of the gang."
  8458  
  8459  "That's gay--that's mighty gay, Tom, I tell you."
  8460  
  8461  "Well, I bet it is. And all that swearing's got to be done at
  8462  midnight, in the lonesomest, awfulest place you can find--a ha'nted
  8463  house is the best, but they're all ripped up now."
  8464  
  8465  "Well, midnight's good, anyway, Tom."
  8466  
  8467  "Yes, so it is. And you've got to swear on a coffin, and sign it with
  8468  blood."
  8469  
  8470  "Now, that's something LIKE! Why, it's a million times bullier than
  8471  pirating. I'll stick to the widder till I rot, Tom; and if I git to be
  8472  a reg'lar ripper of a robber, and everybody talking 'bout it, I reckon
  8473  she'll be proud she snaked me in out of the wet."
  8474  
  8475  
  8476  
  8477  CONCLUSION
  8478  
  8479  SO endeth this chronicle. It being strictly a history of a BOY, it
  8480  must stop here; the story could not go much further without becoming
  8481  the history of a MAN. When one writes a novel about grown people, he
  8482  knows exactly where to stop--that is, with a marriage; but when he
  8483  writes of juveniles, he must stop where he best can.
  8484  
  8485  Most of the characters that perform in this book still live, and are
  8486  prosperous and happy. Some day it may seem worth while to take up the
  8487  story of the younger ones again and see what sort of men and women they
  8488  turned out to be; therefore it will be wisest not to reveal any of that
  8489  part of their lives at present.
  8490  
  8491  
  8492  
  8493  
  8494  
  8495  End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Adventures of Tom Sawyer, Complete
  8496  by Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
  8497  
  8498  *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK TOM SAWYER ***
  8499  
  8500  ***** This file should be named 74.txt or 74.zip *****
  8501  This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  8502          http://www.gutenberg.net/7/74/
  8503  
  8504  Produced by David Widger. The previous edition was update by Jose
  8505  Menendez.
  8506  
  8507  
  8508  Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  8509  will be renamed.
  8510  
  8511  Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  8512  one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  8513  (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  8514  permission and without paying copyright royalties.  Special rules,
  8515  set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  8516  copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  8517  protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark.  Project
  8518  Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  8519  charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission.  If you
  8520  do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  8521  rules is very easy.  You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  8522  such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  8523  research.  They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  8524  practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks.  Redistribution is
  8525  subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  8526  redistribution.
  8527  
  8528  
  8529  
  8530  *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  8531  
  8532  THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  8533  PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  8534  
  8535  To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  8536  distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  8537  (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  8538  Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  8539  Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  8540  http://gutenberg.net/license).
  8541  
  8542  
  8543  Section 1.  General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  8544  electronic works
  8545  
  8546  1.A.  By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  8547  electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  8548  and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  8549  (trademark/copyright) agreement.  If you do not agree to abide by all
  8550  the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  8551  all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  8552  If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  8553  Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  8554  terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  8555  entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  8556  
  8557  1.B.  "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark.  It may only be
  8558  used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  8559  agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement.  There are a few
  8560  things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  8561  even without complying with the full terms of this agreement.  See
  8562  paragraph 1.C below.  There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  8563  Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  8564  and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  8565  works.  See paragraph 1.E below.
  8566  
  8567  1.C.  The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  8568  or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  8569  Gutenberg-tm electronic works.  Nearly all the individual works in the
  8570  collection are in the public domain in the United States.  If an
  8571  individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  8572  located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  8573  copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  8574  works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  8575  are removed.  Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  8576  Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  8577  freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  8578  this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  8579  the work.  You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  8580  keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  8581  Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  8582  
  8583  1.D.  The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  8584  what you can do with this work.  Copyright laws in most countries are in
  8585  a constant state of change.  If you are outside the United States, check
  8586  the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  8587  before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  8588  creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  8589  Gutenberg-tm work.  The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  8590  the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  8591  States.
  8592  
  8593  1.E.  Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  8594  
  8595  1.E.1.  The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  8596  access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  8597  whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  8598  phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  8599  Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  8600  copied or distributed:
  8601  
  8602  This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  8603  almost no restrictions whatsoever.  You may copy it, give it away or
  8604  re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  8605  with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  8606  
  8607  1.E.2.  If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  8608  from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  8609  posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  8610  and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  8611  or charges.  If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  8612  with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  8613  work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  8614  through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  8615  Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  8616  1.E.9.
  8617  
  8618  1.E.3.  If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  8619  with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  8620  must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  8621  terms imposed by the copyright holder.  Additional terms will be linked
  8622  to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  8623  permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  8624  
  8625  1.E.4.  Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  8626  License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  8627  work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  8628  
  8629  1.E.5.  Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  8630  electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  8631  prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  8632  active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  8633  Gutenberg-tm License.
  8634  
  8635  1.E.6.  You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  8636  compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  8637  word processing or hypertext form.  However, if you provide access to or
  8638  distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  8639  "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  8640  posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.net),
  8641  you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  8642  copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  8643  request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  8644  form.  Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  8645  License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  8646  
  8647  1.E.7.  Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  8648  performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  8649  unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  8650  
  8651  1.E.8.  You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  8652  access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  8653  that
  8654  
  8655  - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  8656       the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  8657       you already use to calculate your applicable taxes.  The fee is
  8658       owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  8659       has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  8660       Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.  Royalty payments
  8661       must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  8662       prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  8663       returns.  Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  8664       sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  8665       address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  8666       the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  8667  
  8668  - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  8669       you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  8670       does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  8671       License.  You must require such a user to return or
  8672       destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  8673       and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  8674       Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  8675  
  8676  - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  8677       money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  8678       electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  8679       of receipt of the work.
  8680  
  8681  - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  8682       distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  8683  
  8684  1.E.9.  If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  8685  electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  8686  forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  8687  both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  8688  Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark.  Contact the
  8689  Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  8690  
  8691  1.F.
  8692  
  8693  1.F.1.  Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  8694  effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  8695  public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  8696  collection.  Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  8697  works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  8698  "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  8699  corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  8700  property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  8701  computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  8702  your equipment.
  8703  
  8704  1.F.2.  LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  8705  of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  8706  Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  8707  Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  8708  Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  8709  liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  8710  fees.  YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  8711  LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  8712  PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3.  YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  8713  TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  8714  LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  8715  INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  8716  DAMAGE.
  8717  
  8718  1.F.3.  LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  8719  defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  8720  receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  8721  written explanation to the person you received the work from.  If you
  8722  received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  8723  your written explanation.  The person or entity that provided you with
  8724  the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  8725  refund.  If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  8726  providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  8727  receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund.  If the second copy
  8728  is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  8729  opportunities to fix the problem.
  8730  
  8731  1.F.4.  Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  8732  in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  8733  WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  8734  WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  8735  
  8736  1.F.5.  Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  8737  warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  8738  If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  8739  law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  8740  interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  8741  the applicable state law.  The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  8742  provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  8743  
  8744  1.F.6.  INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  8745  trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  8746  providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  8747  with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  8748  promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  8749  harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  8750  that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  8751  or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  8752  work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  8753  Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  8754  
  8755  
  8756  Section  2.  Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  8757  
  8758  Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  8759  electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  8760  including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers.  It exists
  8761  because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  8762  people in all walks of life.
  8763  
  8764  Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  8765  assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  8766  goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  8767  remain freely available for generations to come.  In 2001, the Project
  8768  Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  8769  and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  8770  To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  8771  and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  8772  and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  8773  
  8774  
  8775  Section 3.  Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  8776  Foundation
  8777  
  8778  The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  8779  501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  8780  state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  8781  Revenue Service.  The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  8782  number is 64-6221541.  Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  8783  http://pglaf.org/fundraising.  Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  8784  Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  8785  permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  8786  
  8787  The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  8788  Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  8789  throughout numerous locations.  Its business office is located at
  8790  809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  8791  business@pglaf.org.  Email contact links and up to date contact
  8792  information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  8793  page at http://pglaf.org
  8794  
  8795  For additional contact information:
  8796       Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  8797       Chief Executive and Director
  8798       gbnewby@pglaf.org
  8799  
  8800  
  8801  Section 4.  Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  8802  Literary Archive Foundation
  8803  
  8804  Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  8805  spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  8806  increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  8807  freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  8808  array of equipment including outdated equipment.  Many small donations
  8809  ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  8810  status with the IRS.
  8811  
  8812  The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  8813  charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  8814  States.  Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  8815  considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  8816  with these requirements.  We do not solicit donations in locations
  8817  where we have not received written confirmation of compliance.  To
  8818  SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  8819  particular state visit http://pglaf.org
  8820  
  8821  While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  8822  have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  8823  against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  8824  approach us with offers to donate.
  8825  
  8826  International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  8827  any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  8828  outside the United States.  U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  8829  
  8830  Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  8831  methods and addresses.  Donations are accepted in a number of other
  8832  ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
  8833  donations.  To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  8834  
  8835  
  8836  Section 5.  General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  8837  works.
  8838  
  8839  Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  8840  concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  8841  with anyone.  For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  8842  Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  8843  
  8844  
  8845  Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  8846  editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  8847  unless a copyright notice is included.  Thus, we do not necessarily
  8848  keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  8849  
  8850  
  8851  Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  8852  
  8853       http://www.gutenberg.net
  8854  
  8855  This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  8856  including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  8857  Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  8858  subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.